THIRD BOOK.
          THE CONQUEST OF ITALY.
          CHAPTER I.
                
          
          FOREIGN HISTORY FROM THE BURNING OF ROME BY THE GAULS
            TO THE BEGINNING OF THE SAMNITE WARS.
                
          
          390-343 B.C.
                
          
          
             
          
          If the obscurity of the older Roman history, as some
            have  supposed, were to be explained entirely or even chiefly by the
            fact that the annals then existing were all destroyed in the Gallic
            conflagration, we might hope that from this time forward the character of the
            narrative would be essentially different. It is true, we should even yet hardly
            expect a full, comprehensive, and connected account of the mediately principal
            events; but we should at least be justified in hoping that the information,
            however bare, jejune, and incomplete, would be in the main trustworthy; that
            there would no longer be great uncertainty about times and places; that
            the Same transactions would no longer be related several times over; that
            we should find no more imaginary battles, conquests, and triumphs; and
            that accounts contradicting each other, or accompanied with vagueness,
            obscurity, inconsistency, and palpable errors— above all, that miracles
            and boundless exaggerations, would no longer disfigure the annals of Rome.
            But such a change for the better is not perceptible at this period.
            On the contrary, the mists of antiquity begin, it would seem, to
            thicken again. The accounts referring to Camillus contain more especially
            so much exaggeration and fiction that we are rarely conscious of treading on
            firmer historical ground after the Gallic conflagration, and
            we cannot avoid the conclusion that, even for some time after that
            disaster, little was done in Rome to preserve the memory of passing events from
            corruption and oblivion.
            
          
          Immediately after the retreat of the Gauls, it is
            said, all the old enemies of Rome—the Etruscans, Volscians, and Aequians—were
            again in arms, in order to take advantage of the helpless condition of the
            Romans, and the threatened revolt of the Latins and Hernicans made these
            attacks especially dangerous. But the tried hero, Camillus, who now for the
            second time commanded the Roman legions as dictator, first attacked and
            overcame the. Volscians, and reduced them to final submission after they
            had carried on war with Rome for seventy years. He then vanquished the Aequians,
            and turned with the rapidity of lightning against the Etruscans,
              who, with united powers, were besieging the town of Sutrium.
              Unable to resist any longer, the inhabitants of Sutrium had already surrendered their town, in consideration of a free retreat,
              and the train of the poor homeless creatures, with their wailing wives
              and children, met Camillus, who was hastening to their relief. He
              immediately pushed forward to Sutrium, where he
              surprised the Etruscans as they were engaged in plundering the town, and,
              having regained the place, restored it to the inhabitants on the same day
              on which they had lost it. A well-deserved triumph crowned this ’threefold
              victory.
              
            
          This story, wonderful enough in itself, is still more
            curious, because we meet with it again three years later. Again Camillus
            returns from a war with the Volscians, and marches against the Etruscans, who,
            in the meantime, had again conquered Sutrium.
            Again the enemy are conquest of expelled and the town is restored to its
            possessors. Of the two conquests of Sutrium one is
            clearly fictitious. We should almost be inclined to doubt the other also,
            because every story related of victories of Camillus is more or
            less suspicious. But Livy reports that, out of the sum which the sale
            of the Etruscan prisoners realised, three golden bowls were dedicated as
            consecrated gifts in the temple of Jupiter Capitolinus,
            inscribed with the name of Camillus and that these bowls were to be seen
            before the feet of Juno until the burning of the Capitol (383 BC), and it
            is, moreover, certain that Sutrium was made a
            Roman colony seven years after the Gallic conflagration.
            
          
          The old confederation of Romans, Latins, and Hernicans,
            which at no time can have been very firm or mutually satisfactory, was, as we
            have already seen, very much weakened and modified by the long wars with the
            Volscians and Aequians. Many of the old confederate cities in
            Latium had been lost. Those which remained had become more dependent on
            Rome, and those which were re-conquered from the Volscians did not regain their
            original position as members of a confederation. From having been
            allied and independent states, they became more and more the subjects
            of Rome.
            
          
          During the invasion of the Gauls, every Latin town
            was, it seems, thrown back on its own resources. The league was completely
            dissolved, since the head town was destroyed and appeared to be
            annihilated. We find, therefore, after the retreat of the Gauls, some
            Latin towns, in an isolated and independent position, as mistresses of
            neighbouring communities. Such towns were especially Praeneste
            and Tibur. At the same time these towns appear to be impatient pf the
            control which the Romans had hitherto exercised over them. They had found out,
            it seems, that Rome was seeking to take away their independence, and
            to sacrifice their interests to her own. They discovered that their
            position, relatively to the Aequians and Volscians, differed essentially
            from that of the Romans; that they had in the end less to fear from an alliance with these peoples than from a confederacy at the
            head of which was such a grasping and centralized power as Rome.
            
          
          Praeneste was the first to venture (382 BC) on open
            war. The subjection of this great, fortified, and at that time impregnable
            town to the dominion of Rome is especially important, because it is alleged
            to be proved by an historical monument and a written record. If these are
            genuine, they leave no doubt of the fact, and may tend moreover
            to raise in our eyes the character also of other
            annalistic statements which are not borne out by any documentary evidence.
            But, unfortunately, the reports concerning this monument and this record
            are of such a kind that, by their contradictions, they warrant grave
            doubts of the trustworthiness of the old collectors of documentary
            evidence. According to Livy, the dictator T. Quinctius Cincinnatus defeated the Praenestines on the Allia, 380 BC, took eight towns which were subject
            to them, as well as the town of Velitiae, by force,
            compelled Praeneste to surrender, conveyed from thence to the Capitol the
            statue of Jupiter Imperator, and placed it between the shrines of
            Jupiter and Minerva, furnished with an inscription which
            declared that ‘Jupiter and all the gods had permitted the dictator T. Quinctius to conquer nine towns.’
            
          
          The first thing that strikes us in this account is,
            that the statue of the supreme deity was carried away from a town, not taken by
            force and destroyed, but surrendered by treaty on condition of retaining
            her liberty. The removal of the statue from Praeneste to Rome would
            have been the sign and symbol of the annihilation of the former town
            as a political community, just as the carrying away of the statue of Juno
            from Veii denoted and sealed the total overthrow of the Veientine state. But Praeneste continued to exist as a
            Latin town with undiminished power. In the following year she even renewed
            the war with Rome, and, according to an entirely trustworthy
            report of Diodorus,  made peace or
            concluded an armistice with Rome only in the year 354 BC. These
            considerations and doubts have still more weight if we compare
            other circumstances. Cicero also mentions a statue of Jupiter in the
            Capitoline Temple, but he says that it was brought by T. Quinctius Flamininus from
            Macedonia. As it is not likely that two statues of Jupiter Imperator were
            placed in the Capitoline Temple, each by a T. Quinctius,
            as war trophies; as moreover Cicero could hardly be misinformed about
            a statue brought to Rome after the Macedonian war, we cannot hesitate to
            condemn the-story which would make the statue in question about 200 years
            older. But if the statue of Jupiter Imperator was not brought to Rome by T. Quinctius from Praeneste, the inscription quoted by
            Livy could have no reference to it. Livy' says that it was engraved
            on a tablet, not on the pedestal or the body of the statue. Such a tablet
            may easily have been put in a wrong place. The object to which it
            originally belonged is indicated by Festus, who mentions an inscription
            in which the ‘dictator T. Quinctius consecrated
            a golden crown to Jupiter, two pounds and a third in weight, because
            in nine days he conquered as many towns, and Praeneste as the tenth.’
            There can be no doubt whatever that Festus and Livy quote the same
            inscription, though both quote it inaccurately. Tet they agree in the main
            as to the substance of its purport, and them testimony leaves no
            doubt that such an inscription and a golden crown were dedicated in
            the temple of Jupiter in commemoration of some signal victories of T. Quinctius Cincinnatus over the Praenestines. It
            is, however, by no means certain at what time the offering was made and the
            inscription composed. If it were contemporary with the event, it would be
            the oldest Latin inscription authentically preserved. But it is quite
            as likely that it was composed by a descendant of T. Quinctius many
            years later. 
            
          
          The references even to such sources of information as
            statues with inscriptions cannot therefore be trusted without the most careful
            investigation, as unfortunately the Roman antiquarians were most
            credulous, and, moreover, inaccurate and superficial. At the same time we
            gain the conviction that we now meet in the Roman history with events
            which, though not cleaned up in every particular, are still no longer mere
            illusions and fictions.
            
          
          The example of Praeneste was followed by several Latin
            towns. Some are described as secretly assisting the Volscians. Lanuvium is hostile; then the Latins generally are in
            open war with Rome. The Hernicans likewise are hostile, 396 B.C. and Tibur
            carries on a lengthy war, in conjunction, as it appears, with Praeneste, long
            after the time when, according to the boast of the Romans, Praeneste had been
            humbled by T. Quinctius.
            
          
          How Rome was able to defend herself against the
            Volscians, in spite of the hostility of many of the Latins and Hernicans, it is
            impossible to say. Apart from the indomitable courage and perseverance which
            distinguished the Roman nation, whether in council or in the field,
            the circumstance that Rome, as a united state,
            stood opposed to a coalition was especially favourable to her.
            Rome always knew very well how to make use of dissensions among her
            enemies. The senate, led by the most tried politicians of the republic,
            doubtless displayed already that dexterity and firmness in its foreign
            policy which greatly distinguished it at a later time. It is
            significant that during these wars a league of the Romans with
            the Samnites is mentioned (354 BC). The Samnites dwelt in the rear
            and on the flank of the Volscians, and they appear just at this time to
            have come into hostile contact with the Ausonian tribes to which the
            Volscians belonged. However this may be, it is certain that the Romans, in
            spite of many vicissitudes, in the end, had the advantage at all
            points. The Latins were compelled to return to their former subordination
            as the confederates of Rome. The Volscians were driven back, and in 358 B.C.
            two new tribes were added to the Roman territory, a circumstance which
            furnishes better evidence of the superiority of the Romans than we can have
            in any reports of Roman conquests and triumphs. This addition to the
            territory of the republic, the first important one which took place on the
            side of Latium, indicates a marked and very decisive success of the Roman
            arms. Undoubtedly the conquered and now incorporated territory was taken
            from the Volscians, and was originally a part of old Latium. Instead
            of being restored to the Latins, it was added to the territory of Rome,
            and this shows plainly how completely the Romans regarded themselves as
            masters of Latium. We hear of no opposition of the Latins against the
            incorporation of the two new tribes. On the contrary, it is reported of —the
            same year (358 BC) that peace with the Latins was  restored, and that
            the latter again placed their contingent at the disposal of the Romans. In
            the same year the Hernicans were reduced to submission. Possibly the
            reports of Roman victories are boastful and exaggerated, and
            the renewal of the old confederacy was brought about more
            by persuasion and peaceable means than by force of arms; still the
            advantage was not less decisively on the side of the Romans. The Latins
            and Hernicans resigned themselves to that which they found was unavoidable.
            Only such towns as Praeneste and Tibur, relying on the strength of their
            walls, could venture to hold out still longer against Rome, and yet
            they also were in the end compelled to submit, 354 BC. But the Latins
            retained a deep-seated grudge against their imperious and ungenerous
            allies, who had become their masters. They considered themselves in
            every respect equal to the Romans. They had fought innumerable battles side by
            side with them, and had helped to gain many a Roman victory. They formed
            the barrier against the Aequians and the Volscians, and through their
            troubles and losses Rome had become great. Now they saw that the
            prize of victory was carried off by the Romans. If discontent and rancour
            filled their hearts, the Romans had sown the seed. Fourteen years after
            the submission of Tibur, the great Latin war broke out (340 BC), which
            more than any other threatened the existence of Rome.
            
          
           On the north of
            the Ciminian mountains, which separate southern from central Etruria, lay
            Tarquinii, one of the oldest and most powerful of the Etruscan towns.
            After the destruction of Veil, this had become the
            immediate neighbour of Rome. The Tarquinians might consider themselves
            safe from a hostile collision with Rome, partly on account of the distance, and
            partly because they were protected by the natural boundary of the Ciminian
            forest, which was at that time a wild and inhospitable mountain tract. Yet
            it was inevitable that quarrels should arise among the neighbours, which
            at any time might give occasion for wars. The Roman citizens who had
            settled in the four tribes formed out of the conquered Veientine territory,
            especially the colonists in the border fortresses, Sutrium and Nepete, behaved probably much after
            the fashion of the advanced posts of a conquering people generally, and
            encroached upon their Etruscan neighbours. But it was not before the year
            358 BC, when, as it seems, the disputes between Rome and the Latins had
            been settled and the old confederation was re-established, that the
            Romans found it advisable to declare war in due form against the
            Tarquinians. This war, which lasted, according to Livy’s account, eight years,
            was carried on with great animosity and under many vicissitudes of
            fortune, and it ended by no means in a complete overthrow of the
            Tarquinians, but in a peace of forty years, which left the independence of
            Tarquinii untouched and the Roman boundary unchanged. Caere and Falerii, it is said, took part in the war against Rome, by sending
            volunteers, and when peace was concluded the people of Caere were compelled to accept the Roman citizenship without, the
            full franchise, i.e. to become subjects of Rome. They
            shared in the burthens, but were not admitted to the honours
            and privileges of Roman citizenship, and the name of the Caerites was ever afterwards applied to designate
            citizens of this class.
            
          
          The national hatred with which the war between the
            Romans and the Etruscans was carried on, showed itself, in the very beginning,
            by a bloody deed, which even the ship, cruel code of war of antiquity could not
            justify. The consul C. Fabius Ambustus was
            beaten by the Tarquinians, and 307 Roman prisoners fell as victims on the
            altars of the Etruscan gods. Religious fanaticism, from which the Greeks and Romans
            were tolerably free, and which we meet only among Asiatic nations and
            among the Celts in Europe, appears to have stimulated the patriotism of
            the Etruscans into madness. This appears also from the part which the
            Etruscan priests took in the battle. As in a religious war, they rushed on
            before the combatants, with burning torches in their hands and serpents in
            their hair. The courage of the Etruscans became fury, and the Roman
            soldiers, not prepared for such terrors, gave way. The Roman territory on
            the right bank of the Tiber was abandoned to the invasion and devastation
            of the enemy. It was necessary to appoint a dictator, and for the
            first time a plebeian, C. Marcius Rutilus, was raised to this post.
            At last, in the year 353 B.C., the defeat of the Romans was avenged, and
            now bloody reprisals were taken on the Etruscan prisoners. Three hundred
            and fifty-eight of the noblest of them were scourged on the Roman
            Forum and beheaded. The Romans succeeded in keeping off the Etruscans, but
            they could boast of no great success, and the peace which was concluded in
            the year 351 BC  was, as we have
            already seen, only a truce of forty years.
            
          
          The predatory invasions of the Gauls in the central
            and southern parts of Italy were repeated as long as the spoil was
            attractive and the opposition not too vigorous. Of their invasions into
            the Roman territory we have two accounts, materially differing from one
            another—that of Polybius, who appears to give the oldest and
            simplest tradition, and, on the other side, that of Livy and
            the other historians, who describe a great number of battles and
            victories with a mass of detail. We give first the story of Polybius,
            which appears to us the most credible, because it is less flattering to
            Roman pride.
            
          
          For thirty years after their first invasion, the Gauls
            remained quiet. Then they appeared suddenly at Alba, and the Romans were
            so surprised and so unprepared that they did not dare to march against
            them. But when the Gauls made another invasion twelve years later,
            they found the Romans, with their allies, armed and ready for battle,
            and they returned in haste back to their own country. Now, when they had
            learnt that the Romans had become strong, they concluded, thirteen years
            later, a treaty of peace with Rome.
            
          
          Out of these few collisions with the Gauls, which were
            neither eventful nor glorious, the patriotic writers from whom Livy
            draws his information have made a series of six great wars and victories, in
            which the heroic deeds of T. Manlius Torquatus and M. Valerius Corvus stand out prominently.
            Already in the year 367 BC, twenty-three years, therefore, after the
            burning of Rome, the Gauls, according to this account, appeared in the
            neighbourhood of Alba. Camillus, who had once deprived them of
            their spoils, and had driven them with victorious hand out of Rome;
            was still living, and had reached the advanced age of fourscore years. He
            was now, for the fifth time, named dictator, and displayed, as he had
            always done, his greatness as a warrior. He totally defeated the barbarians,
            and celebrated a glorious triumph in that same year in which he had
            contributed towards settling the internal disputes which ended with the
            passing of the Licinian laws.
            
          
          The second invasion of the Gauls took place six years
            later, in 361 BC. They advanced as far as the Anio,
            a few miles from Rome. Here it was that a gigantic Gaul challenged the
            best man among the Romans to single combat, and was vanquished by the
            young T. Manlius, who stripped the barbarian of his golden necklace (torques)
            and thus gained the surname Torquatus. Terror
            seized the army of the enemy. They fled under the cover of night.
            
          
          The third invasion of the Gauls took place in the
            following year, 360 BC, the thirtieth after the burning of Rome, i.e.
            the same year in which, according to Polybius, the Gauls returned for the
            first time. But while Polybius knows of no engagement during this year,
            and only says that the Romans did not venture to march against
            their enemies, Livy tells of a victory of the dictator Q. Servilius and of a triumph of the consul C. Poetelius
            over the Gauls and Tiburtines. Two years later,
            368 BC, the Gauls were again beaten at Pedum,
            and the dictator C. Sulpicius triumphed. The same story is repeated in the
            year 350 B.C., under the consul M. Popilius Lamas. At last, in the year 349 BC, the son of Camillus, L. Furius Camillus, gains a decisive victory over the
            Gauls, after which they do not renew their attacks. The pretended victory
            of L. Furius Camillus coincides chronologically
            with the second invasion of the Gauls mentioned by Polybius, when,
            according to this writer, no engagement took place, but the
            enemy retreated like a band of robbers on finding the Romans prepared
            to receive them. Livy, however, by way of a prelude to the victory of the
            Romans, relates the single combat of M. Valerius with the Gallic champion, in which a raven descends on the helmet of the
            Roman, and with his claws and beak gashes the face of the Gaul during the
            fight. That the whole battle and the victory of L. Furius Camillus are as authentic as this single combat is more than
            probable. At all events the account of Polybius throws grave doubts on a
            victory which is not the less suspicious as sharing the legendary character of
            all accounts of Gallic wars in which a Furius Camillus is mentioned.
            
          
          The result of our investigations is, that the whole of
            the six wars with the Gauls, as Livy relates them, are not much more than
            stop-gaps marking points at which the historical, empty annals of the old
            time have been filled up with edifying and patriotic matter. We can therefore
            infer that a considerable part of the other wars is equally
            apocryphal, and we may perhaps have the satisfaction of thinking
            that there were no wars to relate, and that the Romans had now and
            then a little breathing time.
            
          
          
             
          
          CHAPTER II.
                
          
          M. MANLIUS, 384 B.C.
                
          
          
             
          
          It has been already said that in the received account
            of the devastation caused by the Gauls, the mischief done by the barbarians has
            been very much exaggerated. The narrators have had a sort of pleasure in
            representing the distress of the Romans as quite overwhelming. The Gauls are
            said to have destroyed not only all that was combustible, but to have
            demolished the fortifications and the town walls. We are even assured that the
            greater number of citizens perished, and that, after the retreat of the Gauls,
            the pressure of famine led to the desperate resolution of throwing all the old
            men from sixty, years upwards into the Tiber. A popular legend related that
            Fidenae, Ficulea, and other insignificant
            neighbouring towns were encouraged by the distress of Rome to desire a number
            of Roman virgins in marriage, and advanced with an army to the town, to back
            their demand by the display of force; that the Romans, unable to refuse the
            demands of their neighbours, sent a number of female slaves, dressed as Roman
            virgins, into the hostile camp before the gates, and that these, having made
            the enemy drunk, deprived them of their arms, and gave a signal to the Romans,
            who rushed out of the city and cut them down in their sleep.
            
          
          Such stories, of course, deserve no credence.
            Nevertheless it is certain that the retreat of the Gauls was followed by a time
            of misery and great distress. Wherever the barbarians had penetrated, they
            had no doubt destroyed or carried off all the corn, killed the cattle, and
            burnt the mischief, houses. When the Romans returned to their homes,
            they were in the position of men who have been visited by murrain,
            failure of the crops, and conflagration all at once. Yet the organism of
            the commonwealth was unhurt. The spirit of the Roman people still lived,
            and soon began to reinvigorate the body of the state, and to repeople
            the old sacred place. Nor was the courage of the senate broken. Only
            one idea animated the best men of Rome. They set to work to establish the
            state anew, to rebuild the town, and to reassert their commanding position
            among their allies and neighbours.
            
          
          Yet if we can believe our authorities, the people were
            by no means unanimous in their resolution to restore the destroyed town, and to
            cling to the old centre of the state, with which the memories of the past and
            the hopes of future
              greatness were connected. The plebs, instigated by the tribunes, wished to
              leave the heap of ruins on the Tiber, and to emigrate to Veii. There a new
              Rome was to arise in a healthy, strong situation and a
              fruitful country, where they could hope to found a free commonwealth on
              new principles, free from the trammels and traditions of the past. In vain
              Camillus brought the power of his eloquence and the weight of his
              authority to bear against a plan which betrayed the un-Roman and
              impious spirit of its authors. The question was about to be put to
              the vote in the senate, and perfect stillness reigned in the curia. Then
              the voice of a centurion, calling to his soldiers, was heard from the
              Forum, ‘Here we will remain.’ These words were accepted by the senate, and
              also by the people, as an omen and a divine decision. The work
              of restoration was cheerfully begun and finished within a year. Every
              citizen built according to his fancy, and took the materials wherever he
              could find them. The direction of the old streets had disappeared among the
              ruins. The new streets arose without regularity, and without regard to the line
              of the old sewers. Thus it happened that Rome in the time of the emperors was a
              town of narrow, crooked, and irregular streets. Special care
              was, however, bestowed on the temples. They were cleared of all
              rubbish, restored, and newly consecrated. The Capitol, at that part where
              the Gauls had scaled it, was strengthened by huge substructions, which
              moved the wonder of succeeding generations.
              
          
          The story of the intended emigration to Veii we have
            already met with immediately after the conquest of this town, when the
            question arose, how the patricians should manage to have the newly
            acquired lands for their exclusive use and benefit. We have already expressed
            “the suspicion that it is only a misrepresentation of facts by the annalists, when they speak of the intention of
            the plebeians of dividing the Roman state into two parts, and of
            making Veii the seat of half the senate and of half the Roman nation. Such
            an absurd plan never was conceived by the practical plebeians. What they wanted
            was to have a share in the Veientine land, a
            desire which the ruling class at last were obliged to agree to, by giving
            to the plebs allotments of seven jugera a
            head. But, after their usual custom, the patricians had tried to take
            away with one hand what they had given with the other; and so it
            appears that the seven jugera of the Veientine land were handed over to the plebeians, not
            as full property, but incumbered with a tithe.
            
          
          Now, after the destruction of the city by the Gauls,
            the question in dispute, which had not yet been solved, came up again. The
            plebeians once more urged their claim of freehold property, but it was
            again rejected, and it seemed that the first brilliant conquest of the
            Roman arms was to be turned to the exclusive advantage of the ruling class. If,
            accordingly, we consider the whole story of the intended emigration to
            Veii as a misrepresentation of the events in the patrician interest, it is
            quite clear that we must look upon the subsequent story of Manlius as
            equally distorted to suit the views and interests of the
            patricians. We shall find that the policy of Manlius, far from being dangerous
            to the republic, and aiming at the restoration of the monarchy, was directed
            to the improvement of the economical position of the plebeians, that it
            was an attempt to settle the land question, and that it anticipated the
            measure of Sextius and Licinius, which
            was carried only eighteen years later.
              
            
          The story of M. Manlius, as reported by Livy, runs as
            follows. When the restoration of the town had been determined upon, after
            the retreat of the Gauls, a bad time came for the Roman plebeians. They
            had to replace their houses, stables, and barns, their agricultural
            implements, and their cattle, at a time when it was difficult for them
            even to get food to support themselves and their families. There was no
            escape. They were obliged to borrow from the patricians, and their debts
            reduced them to a state of great dependence on their creditors.
            The high rates of interest and the cruel laws of debt drove them
            further and further on the downward path. The privileged class saw this
            misery of their fellow-citizens without compassion. Bowed down by the
            weight of their debts, oppressed by military service and taxes,
            excluded from the honours and advantages of the commonwealth, the
            plebeians were in a situation only too likely to foster the feeling of
            discontent, and to invite them to overthrow the existing order of the state.
            In this distress they found a friend in one of the foremost families of
            the patrician nobility. M. Manlius, the deliverer of the Capitol,
            distinguished by his heroism, which had been displayed in numberless battles,
            had not been admitted since his consulship 392 BC to any public honours, and
            had the humiliation of seeing his rival Camillus, the champion of the
            nobility, preferred before him on every occasion. Resolving, therefore, to join
            the popular party, he took counsel with the tribunes for relieving the
            misery of the common people by grants of land and a remission
            of debts. He held meetings with the leaders of the plebs in his house
            on the Capitol. He accused those of his own class of having embezzled the
            money which had been taken from the Gauls, and he tried in every way to
            gain the favour of the common people. One debtor, whom he saw being
            led away into prison, he immediately set free with his own money. Then he
            sold his estate near Veii, and endowed 400 poor plebeians with the
            proceeds. He declared that, as long as he possessed anything, no
            plebeian should suffer distress. These proceedings assumed at
            last such a threatening aspect that, in order to guard the
            town against insurrection, the senate recalled the dictator
            A. Cornelius Cossus, who was just then in the field fighting against
            the Volscians. The dictator summoned Manlius before his tribunal, accused
            him of falsely and maliciously libelling the patricians, and ordered him
            to be cast into prison. But now the sympathy of the people for
            Manlius became alarming. Tumults arose in the streets.
            Crowds assembled before the prison, and would leave the place neither
            day nor night. The senate thought it too hazardous to persist, and Manlius
            was set free. But the prison had not damped his courage; it had only roused
            his anger. He continued to stir up the multitude, and it seemed as
            though he could not rest until he had broken the power of
            the patricians. He aimed, it was thought, even higher. After the
            overthrow of the nobility, so at least his opponents averred, he wished to
            make himself king of Home by the favour of the plebs. This fear alarmed
            the minds even of his own friends. The people began to tremble
            for their freedom. Two tribunes of the people accused Manlius of high
            treason before the comitia of centuries. But the people could not condemn
            the deliverer of the Capitol in face of its very walls. The accusers then
            removed the assembly of the people to the grove of Poetelius, from which the
            Capitol was not visible, and here Manlius was condemned. He atoned for his
            enterprise with his life. From the height of the rocks which he had
            heroically defended on that memorable night, he was hurled down as a
            traitor to his country. Yet more; his name was branded with infamy. His
            cousins of the Manlian house determined never again
            to adopt Marcus as a name. His abode on the Capitol was razed to the
            ground, and it was decreed that no patrician should henceforth dwell on
            the Capitol. Thus ended the life of Manlius, the deliverer of Rome,
            the humane friend of an oppressed people, condemned by this very people to die
            the death of a traitor.
            
          
          The preceding story is one that raises serious doubts
            regarding its credibility and impartiality. One thing is certain, that
            Manlius was an advocate of the liberties of the plebs. Is it likely that the
            plebeian tribunes acted as his prosecutors, and that the people in the comitia centuriata condemned him. We should have a
            very mean opinion of the Roman plebeians if we could think them capable
            of sacrificing their best friends upon charges so frivolous as those
            which the enemies of Manlius brought against him. But still more
            contemptible would they appear if we could believe the account which makes
            them incline to mercy so long as the Capitol is in sight, and forget his services
            as soon as the assembly is held in a place from which the scene of his
            heroism is not visible. Were they likely to be tricked so easily? Could
            they condemn him, and yet remain so much convinced of his innocence
            that they ascribed a plague which visited Rome in the next year to
            the anger of the gods at his condemnation  
            
          
          These considerations lead as to suspect that the
            assembly which condemned Manlius to death was different from the comitia of
            centuries, which, according to the received story, refused to find him guilty.
            This conclusion is confirmed by some direct evidence. The assembly in the Poeteline Grove is called a ‘concilium populi,’ a term which applies exclusively to the patrician assembly
            of the curiae. Yet more, according to an account preserved by Livy
            himself, the prosecutors of Manlius were the ‘duumviri perduellionis.’
            The office of these duumviri dated from the regal period, and had almost
            been forgotten since the establishment of the republic. The
            duumviri could bring Manlius to trial only before the patrician assembly
            of curiae. By a stretch of power the patricians might claim to exercise
            jurisdiction in the assembly over a member of their own body, although the
            comitia of centuries were competent since the decemviral
            legislation to try capital cases involving the life of a citizen. If
            so, Manlius was not put to death, as Livy reports, by being hurled
            down from the rock of the Capitol. This report was only an inference from
            the assumed fact that Manlius was found guilty on the prosecution of the
            tribunes, for that was the mode of execution adopted by the tribunes. It
            is stated by Cornelius Nepos’ that Manlius was scourged to death, as were
            of old all those condemned for treason to the states.
            
          
          It is hardly necessary to discuss the question of the
            guilt or the innocence of Manlius. If he was accused, judged, and put to
            death by his political opponents, he stands acquitted of the crime of
            having aspired to absolute power. He was, no doubt, as innocent of it as
            the other victims of aristocratic vindictiveness before and after
            him, who were charged with the same offence, as Sp. Cassius, Sp. Maelius, and the Gracchi. We may be sure that such an
            accusation was not even brought against him, but that it is entirely an
            invention of later historians. In certain times certain crimes are
            inconceivable. When the republican government was firmly established and had
            lasted for some generations, no Roman could entertain the idea of upsetting it
            and establishing a monarchy in its place. There was a steadiness in the
            development of the Roman constitution (in glaring contrast with the
            oscillations to which most Greek states were exposed), which excluded even the
            thought of tyranny, so long as the dominion of Rome was confined to Italy.
            We may therefore be convinced that, whatever the charge was which the duumviri perduellionis brought against
            Manlius, it was not that which the annalists,
            writing under the influence of Greek impressions, assigned.
            
          
          It was the all but general impression among Roman
            writers that Manlius was guilty of treason, but the opposite view has also
            advocates among ancient writers. Quinctilian says
            that it was his popularity which was interpreted as a proof of his ambition;
            and the annotation which the grammarian Servius made in later times to his
            Virgil, ‘that Manlius fell a victim to the vengeance of his enemies,’ was
            surely not invented by him, but extracted from some source which was not clouded
            by patrician party hatred. What were the real aims of Manlius, it is
            impossible for us to make out with perfect certainty, considering the evidence
            we have at our command. Perhaps he had already in view the division of the
            consulate between patricians and plebeians, as that had been
            the proposition of the popular party half a century before, and was
            carried less than twenty years after his death; but that he intended to
            relieve the pecuniary distress of the plebeians, and especially to reform
            the agrarian laws with regard to the use of the common lands, may be
            considered tolerably certain. The accusation which Livy brings against
            him, that, not satisfied with agrarian laws, in which the tribunes had always
            found matter for civil quarrels, he had begun also to undermine the public
            credit, agrees fully with the speeches which that historian, adopting the
            reports of the older narrators, puts into his mouth. Appian ascribes to Manlius
            a proposal according to which the debts were simply to be cancelled, or
            paid by the state from the proceeds of the sale of common land.
            Considered in this light, the report that Manlius sold his estates
            near Veii, and bestowed the proceeds upon four hundred
            poor plebeians, becomes especially significant. For if Manlius, like
            his successors Sextus and Licinius, wished to limit the possessions of the
            patricians in the common land for the benefit of the plebeians (a
            limitation which, as shown above, could refer only to newly acquired
            domains, especially therefore to domains in the district of Veii), it
            is possible that he began by giving the example and parcelling out his own
            possessions to poor occupiers. Perhaps Manlius freed from rents those of
            his clients who had settled on his land, making them practically
            freeholders. But such a proceeding was, in the eye of the
            nobility, treason to the interests of his own class, and deserved to
            be punished with inexorable severity.
            
          
          If this was the object of the nobility, it was soon
            shown that they had protected their supposed interests only for a very
            short time at the expense of the noblest blood. For the moment the
            judicial murder of Manlius might intimidate the popular party; but where a
            whole people puts forward claims indisputably equitable, it is not
            possible to repress them long by terror. Scarcely was Manlius murdered,
            than we see traces again of new struggles for improving the condition of the
            poor citizens. As a concession of the patricians, and to avoid more extensive
            demands, a commission was appointed in the following year to divide the Pomptine district among the people, and another to
            send a colony to Nepete.
            
          
          Before any general measure could be proposed for the
            relief of debtors on a large scale, it was of course necessary to ascertain
            what was the amount of debts under which the people suffered. This could
            be done only by means of a new census, in which the real property
            of every citizen was noted down, after deducting his debts. Hence we
            find that in the year 380 B.C. disputes began on the election of censors,
            the tribunes insisting on the necessity of a new census, and the
            patricians endeavouring by all possible artifices and manoeuvres to prevent
            it. When at last an election had taken place, one of the censors
            died, and it was necessary to proceed with a new election. This, however,
            was declared vitiated, because an error had taken place in the
            formalities. To proceed to a third election would have been an act of
            impiety, as it was clear that the gods would not have any censors for this
            year. It was of no avail that the tribunes protested and complained of a
            religious trick and a perversion of right. Their threats to prevent a levying
            of troops were powerless when the Praenestines appeared before the gates of Home and the common fatherland was in danger.
            The inquiry into the state of indebtedness had to be postponed, in spite
            of the opposition of the popular party. Two years later (378 BC) the
            same disputes about the census were repeated, and again with the same result.
            The census was prevented, it is said, by an invasion of the Volscians into
            the Roman territory. With such pertinacity did the Roman patricians defend a
            position which became daily more and more untenable, and which
            was destined in a short time to yield to the indefatigable attacks of
            the popular party.
            
          
          During these long disputes the patrician class, as
            also that of the plebeians, underwent changes which altered the relative
            strength and character of parties. The number of the patricians was very
            much diminished. As a class which was not increased by new blood from
            without, the patricians paid for the privilege of forming an
            exclusive hereditary nobility by a continual diminution of
            their numbers, whereas the numbers of the plebeians were constantly
            increasing. The direct results of the Canuleian law
            which legalised marriage between patricians and plebeians could not
            operate effectually in increasing the patrician class to any great extent,
            as of course only a few of the prominent families of the plebs were
            admitted to relationship with the patricians. On the other hand,
            through such relationships a plebeian nobility was gradually formed,
            intimately connected with a number of patrician families. Thus the plebs
            gained leaders who could oppose the old conservative nobility with much
            greater energy than the former tribunes, supported by the plebs
            alone. The parties which always had existed among the patricians themselves
            became more marked, and the one which was favourable to reform joined the
            leaders of the plebs. That there was a party among the patricians well-disposed to
            the people is seen by the proceedings of Manlius, who probably did not
            stand alone. Since the establishment of the consular tribuneship,
            plebeians had gradually been admitted into the senate, and the formation
            of a plebeian nobility had begun.
            
          
          Whilst thus a few plebeian families attained
            respectability, wealth, and power, the majority of the plebeians chap. were,
            since the burning of the city by the Gauls, sunk in debt and poverty, and this
            situation had become a weapon in the hands of the party leaders. Whoever
            promised relief from debt could be sure of the support of the mass of the
            people, who are most zealous in political reforms when they imagine they
            can gain material advantages by them. In the year 384 BC Manlius was put to
            death, and the reforms which he proposed were thrown out for the time. But only
            eight years later, in 376 BC, a movement began, which not merely took up his
            projects for improving the material condition of the plebs, but aimed at a
            higher object, the complete equality of the two orders of
            citizens, an object which the leaders of the plebs had never
            lost sight of since the Terentilian rogations,
            but which it still took a severe struggle of several years to realise.
            
          
          
             
          
          CHAPTER III.
                
          
          THE LICINIAN LAWS, 366 B.C.
                
          
          
             
          
          The details of the constitutional struggle which led
            to the Licinian laws are lost to us, like most of the incidents in the
            early history of Rome which would contribute to make it attractive and
            interesting. In their place the annalists have
            preserved a number of irrelevant, contradictory, untrustworthy, and
            incredible statements, which it is impossible to work up into a smooth
            consistent narrative. We must therefore be satisfied if we can succeed in
            tracing so much of the leading outline of events as will enable us to
            understand the great reform effected by the Licinian laws.
            
          
          Among the prominent plebeian families which had at an
            early period turned to advantage the liberties gained by the plebeians,
            were the Licinii. A certain Licinius Calvus was
            one of the first tribunes, in the year 493 BC. In the year 481 BC a
            Licinius was again elected as tribune, and if we had the complete list of
            these magistrates we should no doubt very frequently meet with the names
            of the Licinii. After the establishment of
            the consular tribuneship it was again a Licinius who, in 400 BC, was
            the first plebeian raised to this dignity, and four years later, 396 BC,
            we find a son of his in the same office. The Licinians had no doubt early gained wealth, and therefore it may be readily
            supposed that they connected themselves by marriage with the noblest
            patrician houses. M. Fabius Ambustus, one of the
            consular tribunes who had commanded in the unfortunate battle on the Allia, , married one of his daughters to C. Licinius
            Stolo, who filled the office of tribune in the year 376 BC. This 366 Licinius
            and his colleague, L. Sextius, supported, no
            doubt, by a liberal party amongst the nobility, now came forward with
            proposals of a comprehensive reform.
            
          
          The first law was intended to be only of temporary
            effect, and to put an end to the existing distress of the poor debtors.
            Starting from the idea that to take interest on a loan offends a natural
            law (a view which was widely received in ancient times), the two tribunes
            proposed that the debtors should pay back only the capital lent,
            minus the sums paid as interest ; the rest to be paid in three years,
            probably with the help of the state. The second law was calculated to make
            such a general indebtedness as now existed impossible for the future. It
            aimed at creating the largest possible number of freeholders, and
            at limiting the dependence of the small peasants on the great landed
            proprietors. From this time, therefore, no single Bom an citizen was to
            occupy more than five hundred jugera of the state
            land. This law made it possible for a larger number of citizens to occupy
            the state lands, and it placed land at the disposal of the state for
            distribution. A third law provided that the office of consular
            tribunes should be abolished, and the consulship re-established, with
            the very important addition that one of the two consuls should always be a
            plebeian.
            
          
          The struggle for this reform lasted ten years, if we
            may Agitation believe the tradition. During the first half of this
            period the patricians strove to cause a division among the tribunes, and
            to meet the proposals of Licinius and Sextius by
            the veto of some of their colleagues. These manoeuvres compelled Licinius
            and Sextius to avail themselves of the extreme
            power which their office placed in their hands. They stopped the election
            of all patrician magistrates during five consecutive years, so that the
            state during this period was in fact without government and order. Not until
            the ever-watchful enemies of Rome availed themselves of this state of anarchy
            to threaten the town, did the two tribunes consent to the election of
            magistrates. But from year to year they gained ground. The opposition within
            the body of tribunes was at length silenced. Then, instead of moderating their
            proposals and of dropping the law as to the election of plebeian consuls, as
            the patricians wished, they pushed their demands further,
            and proposed that the number of the officers for regulating religious
            festivals should be increased from two to ten, and should be divided
            between the patricians and plebeians. The opposition of the patricians was
            most pertinacious. They tried the terrors of a dictatorship to overawe
            the leaders of the plebs. Camillus, the champion of the nobility,
              was selected to throw the weight of his name and influence into the
                balance. It was all in vain. The perseverance of the popular party triumphed in
                the end. The patricians were obliged to yield, and when the bills
                had been accepted in the comitia of tribes, the senate was compelled
                to sanction them. The consular elections tools; place according to the new
                laws. One of the two elected was L. Sextius. But
                even now the contest was not ended. The senate refused to approve the
                election of L. Sextius. Another secession, was imminent,
                when the old Camillus acted as mediator and peacemaker. The office of
                supreme judge was separated from the consulate, and under the name of
                praetorship, which from the beginning of the republic had been the title
                of the chief magistracy, was reserved for the patricians. It may be considered
                a further concession to the nobility that to the plebeian aediles,
                who were officers of police and assistants of the tribunes, a curule
                office of patrician aediles was added, charged with the duty of preparing
                and superintending the public games. But this new office did not
                remain long in the exclusive possession of the patricians. It
                was made accessible to plebeians almost immediately.
                
          
          The long dispute was thus at length brought to an end.
            It is true, something still remained which the patricians had saved from the
            wreck. They still held for themselves the censorship, the praetorship, and the
            principal priesthoods. But by the division of the consulate among the two
            orders the dispute was settled in principle. In the course of twenty-seven
            years (339 BC) the plebeians became eligible for the censorship, two years
            later (337 BC) for the office of praetor, while by the Ogulnian law (300 BC) the admission to the priestly offices was opened to them.
            The republican constitution had now attained its perfection. The gulf
            which front the beginning had separated the two classes was bridged over.
            The difference between patricians and plebeians, it is true, was not yet at an
            end, but the two classes were no longer ranged against each other as
            hostile parties. The old opposition was done away with. A new era began.
            The elements of the Roman people assumed other forms. A new nobility
            arose. The place of the patricians, the nobles by race and descent,
            was taken now by a nobility of office, less strictly divided from the
            mass of the people, constantly increased by the accession of new members, but
            not less decidedly greedy of power, avaricious and stubborn in preserving
            their preponderance in the state, and as consistent, firm, adroit, and unscrupulous
            in promoting the greatness and power of Rome abroad.
            
          
          The reform effected by the Licinian laws is clear, at
            least in its outlines and in some of the most important parts. It was
            impossible for the annalists to misrepresent it,
            as the laws themselves remained its permanent evidence. But the details of
            the constitutional struggle are involved in much obscurity. We meet here
            with the same idle stories, exaggerations, and utterly untrustworthy
            and incredible statements which the annalists have generally imported into a narrative which pretends to be the
            early history of the Roman people. The anecdote with which Livy1
            introduces his story is badly invented. M. Fabius Ambustus,
            it is said, had married his eldest daughter to the patrician C. Sulpicius
            Rufus, the younger to the plebeian C. Licinius Stolo. The two sisters were once
            sitting talking together in the house of Sulpicius, who happened at that time
            to be consular tribune, when Sulpicius accidentally returned home from the
            Forum, and his lictor, according to custom, knocked with his fasces
            loudly against the door of the house, to announce the arrival of his
            master. Frightened at the noise, which she was unaccustomed to, the younger
            sister started, and excited the mirth and derision of the elder, who
            informed her of the cause of the noise. Wounded in her pride and
            humbled that she, the wife of a plebeian, was to forego the pomp and
            honour of official rank, she rested not till she had instigated her father
            as well as her husband to change the order of things in Rome, and to bring
            about a reform by which she would be able to show herself equal to
            the noblest matrons.—This story does not stand examination. How could
            the daughter of M. Fabius Ambustus, who himself
            had been consular tribune four years before, have been frightened at the
            knocking of the lictor at the house door, or have felt herself degraded, by
            marrying a man whose family had already held the chief magistracy in
            the state, and who could expect the same distinction for himself? The
            story is one of that class by which the vulgar attempt to discover the
            cause of great events in trivial or accidental circumstances. It is
            characteristic of the ancient historians that this absurd story is
            repeated by Livy and his successors without the least hesitation, as
            if it were perfectly authenticated.
            
          
          Whatever we may think of the story of the two
            daughters of Fabius, whether we admit or reject it, the general course of
            events is not affected by it in the least. But it is not so with regard to
            a statement which seems to have been generally received by the ancient
            writers—a story to the effect that, in consequence of the intercession of
            the tribunes, the Roman state was five years without its regular magistrates.
            Our difficulty does not consist here in seeing the impossibility of such a
            fact, but in comprehending how sensible men could assert, without hesitation,
            anything so foolish. Livy, having reported, year after year, foreign wars
            and internal disputes, now relates that the government, or rather the history,
            of Rome came to a standstill for five years, in the midst of the
            hottest party struggles, and in the midst of wars with
            national enemies and rebellious allies. Such an event would have been
            a miracle, not less palpable than the cutting of a whetstone with a razor;
            for not only in physical nature, but also in the social and political life
            of men, there are laws determined by the peculiarities of the human
            mind, which cannot be set aside or broken without a
            miraculous interference of divine power. The surging waves of
            the stormy sea are smoothed down more easily than the angry disputes
            of free citizens. The sudden appearance of an irresistible force,
            exercised by a dictator, a tyrant, a Caesar or a Napoleon, can silence
            social disorder with surprising rapidity, but such a calm cannot be
            produced when even the accustomed guardians of political order are
            wanting.
            
          
          The account of the five years of anarchy is therefore
            to be rejected without hesitation. The disarrangement of the
            patricians, received chronology is the inevitable result. It appears
            that the compilers of the old annals found themselves obliged to
            insert five years in order to make their calculations meet. They thought
            the present moment suitable, and after ah were honest enough not to fill
            up the inserted space of five years with invented names of
            magistrates, battles, and triumphs. We must thank them for this self-control,
            in which we see an approach to the restraint exercised on arbitrary invention
            by historical evidence. As to the manner in which the tribunes brought
            their proposals before the people, the descriptions of the historians are
            by no means clear and satisfactory. By the lex Valeria Horatia of the year 449 B.C., which, after the fall of the decemvira,
            had entitled the assembly of tribes to legislate for the whole community,
            resolutions of the tribes were binding for the state as soon as the
            senate had given its consent (the patrum auctoritas). If therefore the senate was
            unanimous, it could, like an upper House of Parliament, reject every law
            proposed by the tribes. But the senate opposed itself by such a proceeding
            so openly to the will of the people that it would have called forth a
            formidable resistance. It is therefore not at all unlikely that the
            patricians, as is related, adopted the plan of opposing the measure of
            Licinius and Sextius, not by a direct negative
            of the senate, but by a party among the plebeians themselves. They gained
            over to their side some of the ten tribunes, and were thus enabled to
            oppose the tribunician veto to the tribunician bill, a proceeding by which
            the progress of the bill was stopped in the very first stage and which
            prevented it from officially reaching the senate. We are told that this
            opposition in the body of the tribunes, though it grew weaker year
            by year, was yet continued; nor can we understand how Licinius and Sextius could silence it without an act of violence,
            so as to get their bill accepted by the comitia tributa in due form.
            
          
          A more direct opposition on the side of the senate was
            a sort of declaration of martial law in the form of a nomination of dictators
            who were to curb the plebs with their unlimited military power. For this
            purpose Camillus, it is said, was nominated twice, and P. Manlius once.
            In these transactions Camillus played no very glorious part as the
            champion of the old nobility: The first time he allowed himself to be
            intimidated by Licinius and Sextius, who
            threatened him with a fine; or, according to another report, he resigned,
            under the pretext of a fault in the formality of his nomination. The
            second time he advised, without hesitation, peace and compliance. On the
            other hand, the dictatorship of P. Manlius looks almost like
            an attempt at a compromise, as he had for his Master of the Horse the
            plebeian Licinius Calvus Stolo, evidently a kinsman of the tribune Licinius.
            This was the first instance of a plebeian being raised to this office, and
            it marks an important advance of the plebeian rights. But what
            P. Manlius actually accomplished, and whether he helped to bling
            about a final arrangement, is not stated. Perhaps he belonged to that
            party in the senate which, in opposition to the staunch adherents of the
            obsolete privileges of the nobility, understood the requirements of the
            times.
            
          
          Such a party has existed in every aristocracy both in
            old and modern times, as it will always exist so long as human nature remains
            unchanged and the impulses of men are drawn in two different directions—in other words, so long
              as attachment to old-established institutions and a desire of improvement
              and progress divide the human breast. The Roman aristocracy was no
              exception to this rule. It is true we have but scanty information of the state
              of parties among the leading patricians in the earlier period. We do not
              know the strength of the Liberals amongst them. But we may be convinced
              that men like Sp. Cassius, the Valerii,
              Horatius, M. Manlius, and Appius Claudius, were not without friends and
              adherents. This Liberal party acquired a great accession of strength after the
              establishment of the consular tribuneship, and after the Canuleian law, which made marriages between the two classes lawful. There were now
              not only patrician friends of the plebeians, but also real
              plebeians in the senate, and it may be surmised that the reform question
              was as warmly debated within the precincts of the senate as on the Forum.
              The tribunes of the people were at this time no longer confined to seats
              outside the door of the senate-house. They had admission to
              the sittings, perhaps even the right to summon the senate; at any
              rate they could easily, through the presiding magistrates, cause their motions
              to be laid before the senate. If P. Manlius—as we may infer from his
              appointing a plebeian as master of the horse—was selected to succeed Camillus
              in the dictatorship, because he belonged to a less conservative party, it
              is clear that the popular party was at this time very largely and
              influentially represented in the senate, and that the time had really come
              when the demands of the plebeian body could no longer be evaded with
              safety.
              
            
          The propositions of Licinius and Sextius were at length made law in due form, though not without some
            important modifications. If we ask what were the several
            provisions of the laws called, after their originator, ‘the
            Licinian laws,’ we are again disappointed by the
            unsatisfactory answer which the meagreness of the evidence at
            our command constrains us to give. Only one of the three principal
            measures stands out in perfect clearness, viz., that which provided that
            the consulship should in future be divided between patricians and
            plebeians. Of the second law, which referred to the regulation of tenures,
            we have but an imperfect knowledge ; and of the third, which
            had reference to the relief of insolvent debtors, we know hardly anything
            with certainty, except its general tendency. This last law was of a
            temporary and transient operation, and was for that reason forgotten when
            it had ceased to be applied. The agrarian law seems very soon to have been
            evaded, and later on to have been quite disregarded. Only the law as to the
            election of plebeian consuls, which the whole of the Roman people were called
            upon to apply every  year, and which, in its simplicity, stood out
            sharply and decidedly, was on the whole preserved intact and inviolate, and
            engaged public attention so much that the Licinian legislation continued
            to be remembered almost exclusively as a law on the plebeian consulate.
            
          
          The old Roman law of debt was, in accordance with the
            character of the Romans, harsh and severe. It treated the insolvent debtor as a
            delinquent who had broken a sacred contract with society. His goods and
            chattels, his personal freedom, as well as that of those belonging to
            him, were liable to be taken in payment of his debts. He who did not
            pay at the appointed time fell into a state of bondage differing
            practically but little from actual slavery. He was led away as a slave by
            his creditors, compelled to work, and scourged or loaded with chains, as
            long as he had not fulfilled his obligations. He could be sold as a
            slave into a foreign country; nay, the Homan law, in its
            heartless consistency, is said to have gone so far as to threaten
            a debtor with the extreme punishment of a disgraceful death at the
            hands of his creditors.
            
          
          A prominent feature in the character of the Romans was
            their intense love of gain. The highest as well as the lowest among them were
            greedy and avaricious. This passion blunted the feelings of kindliness and
            sympathy for human suffering, and inspired those harsh and
            even inhuman laws, which were intended to extort payment at almost
            any cost from insolvent or obstinate debtors. But a strict law of debt
            would not in itself have furnished the plebeians with any grounds for
            complaint, unless there had been other circumstances which had the effect
            of placing the plebeians exclusively in the position of debtors.
            By these other circumstances the laws of debt came to be a means of
            oppression in the hands of the patricians; and the reform of these laws,
            as. well as a remission of debts, was no longer a question of the civil
            law, but was treated as a subject of political debate and party warfare
            between the two classes. The tribunes became the patrons of the insolvent
            plebeians, and every concession, every relief of the debtor, had to be
            obtained from the patricians, as a class, by threats or violence.
            
          
          The ancient writers have not explained how it happened
            that the plebeians are always named as the debtors and the patricians as
            the creditors. They pass it over as if it was a matter of course which
            needed no explanation. Modern writers have done the same. Nobody seems
            to have thought it necessary to inquire specially into this peculiar
            state of things, which made the law of debt an instrument of oppression,
            not of the poor by the rich, but of the plebeians by the patricians. The
            answer to this question is to be found in the laws which regulated
            the tenure of land. The plebeians—at least, those among them who were
            clients—were hereditary tenants of patrician families, and as such in a
            position of private as well as political dependence, such as must be found
            everywhere and at all times where the great mass of the land is
            altogether in the hands of the ruling class, especially at an early
            period of civilisation, in which public and private rights are
            not strictly separated, and in which the possession of
            political privileges is looked upon as a source of profit. Such
            a condition of things prevailed also in Rome. The clientela, which
            we meet with in the beginning of the Roman history, exhibits the peculiar form
            which the political and social dependence of the lower class assumed. The
            client was the hereditary debtor of his patron, and his debts arose
            not only from loans for implements, stock, and seed corn, but also from his
            obligation to pay an annual rent. Other plebeians also, who were not
            clients, might of course borrow money and become insolvent, but the great
            mass of debt must have been a natural consequence of the
            legal position of the client-plebeians, and thus the general complaint of
            oppression for debt became a plebeian grievance, and the remedy for it was
            sought by means of a treaty between the two classes.
            
          
          This state of things explains the close connexion of
            the relief given to debtors with the agrarian laws of Licinius. It shows
            that the debts of the plebeians arose, not from speculative loans, but
            through the distress of the poor, a distress which was the natural and
            inevitable consequence of the laws regulating the tenure of land. If this
            distress was to be removed, it was necessary not only to give temporary
            relief, by a total or partial remission of debt, but to adopt measures by
            which the dependent peasant should be made a freeholder. Viewed in this
            light the abolition of debts appears no longer, an unjust and revolutionary measure.
            If the patricians had actually made loans of money to the plebeians, which
            the latter employed for their own profit, it would not be possible to
            justify; even from the plebeian point of view, a reduction of the
            capital equal to the amount of interest paid; for the laws of
            the Twelve Tables had given a legal sanction to a certain fixed rate
            of interest. But the case was different if the debts were in reality, a
            consequence of the state of dependence in which the plebeians stood as
            clients to the patricians, and were loans only by a legal fiction. The
            exclusive possession of the common, land by the patricians had long been
            disputed by the plebeians and branded as a crying injustice. The Icilian law, passed as early as 456 B.C., had released
            the plebeians settled on the Aventine from their dependence as tenants of the
            patricians and had changed their imperfect tenure into freehold. After the
            great acquisitions of land, especially those which followed
            the conquest of Veil, the demands of the plebeians for freehold land
            had become louder and more vehement.
            
          
          It is not unlikely that these demands of the plebeians
            were the real substance of the dispute between them and Camillus, and the
            crime of Manlius may have been nothing more than the proposal to deliver
            the settlers on the Veientine territory from the
            duty of paying tithes. If the tribunes Licinius and Sextius entertained these questions, they were able to allege that the patrician
            occupiers of the new land, who had made advances to their clients
            for agricultural implements, stock, and seed-corn, were not entitled
            to more than the re-payment of these advances together with the lawful
            interest, that they ought never to have claimed an annual rent, and that all
            the payments made under this head should be deducted from the
            capital advanced.
            
          
          Thus we can understand the principal features of the
            Licinian law which effected a reduction of debts. But the details are
            beyond our reach. We do not know whether a difference was made between
            debts arising from loans and debts arising from predial
            dependence. Nor is it in any way hinted by what means the
            debtors were enabled to pay within three years the debts remaining after
            deduction of the interest already paid. Still less are we able to discover
            how the law was carried out—whether it produced the intended effect, or
            whether, like so many other laws enacted with the best intentions, it
            was evaded or frustrated by the intrigues of its powerful opponents. That,
            at any rate, it produced no thorough change is evident from the continued
            distress of the plebeians, and from the repeated attempts to remedy it by
            legislation.
            
          
          The agrarian laws of Licinius may, on account of their
            great importance, be compared to the abolition of villenage in several modem
            states. Their object was the formation, or at least the increase, of an
            independent peasantry, and a corresponding diminution of the seignorial rights
            of the great landed proprietors. These measures were carried at a most favorable conjuncture, when, by the success of the Roman
            arms, the original territory was more than doubled and when that class of
            citizens which had hitherto been dependent and labouring under
            disabilities found itself sufficiently strong to claim a share as well in
            the material gains of these successes as in the honours and distinctions of
            the republic. The import of the word people (populus) had
            changed in course of time. From the original people of the patricians it
            had passed over to the body of burgesses, consisting of the two classes. When
            the centuries had taken upon themselves all the burdens, and with
            them the sovereignty, of the republic, the patricians could no longer
            say, ‘We are the state.’ As a matter of course the old import of the word
            ‘common land (ager publicus) could no longer be
            maintained, and a continued exclusion of the plebeians from this common
            land became a crying injustice. Consequently, after the very first
            acquisition of territory in 442 B.C. which was made by the republic
            after a long period of distress, we meet with traces of
            plebeian agitations in which the exclusive claim of the patricians to
            the common land is called an injustice. Yet the old privilege did not give
            way at the first blow. The Roman patricians fought for it with all the
            tenacity of their character. It was only in consequence of the violent
            agitation for the Licinian laws that the ruling class made a concession
            which so nearly affected their interests.
            
          
          Niebuhr was the first to show, what is now generally
            admitted, that the maximum of five hundred jugera of land which the Licinian laws allowed, was not private property but common
            land. The measure was therefore no confiscation, but a regulation of the
            right of occupying the public land, a right which the patricians had
            hitherto exercised without limitation according to their will and pleasure. It
            was usual for the state after a new conquest to dispose, by assignation or
            sale, of only a portion of the acquired territory. The greater part was
            left to be occupied by the citizens; the state reserving to itself
            only the fee simple and (at least since 406 B.C.) an annual rent. It
            is clear that such an occupation of land by sufferance of the state,
            though it could not confer the title of ownership, could nevertheless claim to
            be recognised and protected by law, especially in cases where the occupied
            land was improved by the occupier, and where capital had been laid
            out on it for buildings, roads, and other purposes. When, in course of
            time, such land passed into other hands by sale or inheritance, the state
            could not disturb the possession without straining its legal right even to
            the verge of injustice. A resumption of such lands
            without compensation would have amounted almost to confiscation of
            private property. But at the time of the Licinian laws, the occupation of
            the Veientine territory was comparatively recent.
            Veil had fallen in 396 B.C. In the year 376 Licinius first brought forward
            his rogations. In the twenty years intervening, the inroad of the Gauls
            took place, which could not but prevent all considerable investments in
            land. Moreover the agitation for the division of the conquered land among
            the plebeians, which began immediately after the fall of Veil, might serve
            as a warning to the patricians not to look upon any possession in
            that quarter as safe property. It is not likely, therefore, that many
            patricians had actually begun to farm more than five hundred jugera in the district of Veii, and the
            Licinian measure may have had no retrospective effect at all, and may
            have been intended rather to regulate the right of occupation for the
            future only. Consequently we hear of no case of a patrician being compelled to
            restore to the state any land that he had already occupied. The sanction for
            the occupation of five hundred jugera,
            conferring, as matter of course, a guarantee for the security of
            this possession, may be looked upon as a compensation for the losses
            which the patricians suffered by being deprived of the tithes of their clients
            for the future. Under these circumstances the whole measure was as free
            from injustice to the large proprietors as it was beneficial to
            the peasantry.
            
          
          Livy’s statements regarding the details of the
            agrarian law of Licinius are extremely scanty. He mentions nothing but the
            legal maximum of land which an individual was allowed to possess. But there are
            several points with regard to which we should like to be more fully informed. Niebuhr
              has attempted to draw a more complete sketch of the legislation of Licinius and Sextius by borrowing some features from the agrarian laws
                of the Gracchi which are somewhat better known, and which were essentially
                re-enactments of the Licinian laws, and by gathering a few detached
                statements found here and there in Appian, Plutarch, and elsewhere. But
                his conjectures are very doubtful, because it appears that neither Appian
                nor Plutarch had access to any genuine traditions bearing on the
                older law, and that their statements are nothing but guesses and
                inferences.
                
              
          It is very doubtful whether in the time of Licinius
            the employment of slaves in agriculture had become very extensive, and had
            threatened to ruin the small peasants by the competition of slave labour,
            and to facilitate the growth of large landed properties. It is well known
            that this was the case, in the time of the Gracchi, and that
            they endeavoured to counteract the evil by proposing a law which required
            a certain portion of agricultural labourers to be free men. It seems rather
            probable that at the time of the Licinian laws the number of slaves was
            still small, although after the conquest of Veii a change had
            taken place in this respect. The majority of Roman citizens here free
            peasants. All that he know for certain of the period of the Samnite wars
            points to this conclusion. In consequence of these wars, however, the
            number of slaves increased considerably, and after the subjection of
            those Italians who had rebelled in the Hannibalic war, slavery began
            to assume large proportions, and the free peasantry of the old time
            diminished more and more. Later still, when, after the conquest of
            Macedonia and Greece, the wealth of the East flowed towards Italy, and
            when the Roman nobility had degenerated into a plutocracy, the signs
            became manifest of a decay which the Gracchi strove to prevent, but which
            they were too late to arrest.
            
          
          On the whole there seems to be ground for assuming
            that the agrarian law of Licinius was productive of good results for a
            considerable time, even if it failed to effect all the good intended by
            its author. The Roman commonwealth, if it was to grow, could, from the nature
            of its institutions, grow only by conquest. But every conquest in
            antiquity was not only an extension of the power of the victorious race,
            but a material profit for the conquerors by the booty and the
            confiscations which it brought with it. This profit naturally was accumulated
            in the hands of the ruling families, whilst in those of the common people
            it melted away. No law therefore would have been able to secure
            permanently an equal distribution of wealth, and it is not surprising that
            in the course of two hundred years a greater disproportion existed between
            rich land-owners and impoverished citizens than in the older times
            of greater simplicity and contentment.
            
          
          The third law of Licinius was intended to effect a
            change in the constitution of the republic. The office of consular
            tribunes, which had been created in 444 B.C., bore from the very beginning
            the character of a compromise and a provisional arrangement. It was
            intended to alternate with the consulship according to the circumstances of the
            times, and plebeians were to be eligible. But in reality this concession of the
            patricians was found to be not a real one. Not only did the patricians
            manage for a long time to prevent the election of consular
            tribunes altogether, but they succeeded also for forty-four years (444 to
            400 BC) in excluding the plebeians from the office. At length when, in 400
            BC, the plebeians had carried the election of one of their class, little
            was gained after all, for they could not maintain the advantage which
            they had gained. The patrician influence at the elections
            was irresistible. Only on two succeeding occasions did
            plebeians obtain the dignity which they were entitled by law to share
            regularly with the patricians. It was clear that the plebeians were unable
            to obtain in this manner the rights they claimed. The mere concession of
            eligibility was of no use. It was necessary to make it by law compulsory
            for the people to elect a plebeian to the highest office of the state, and
            unconditionally to exclude the patricians from the place reserved for a
            plebeian. For this purpose the old consular office was re-established,
            which, in truth had continued to exist in a modified form in
            the office of consular tribunes. The very name of the latter (tribuni militum consulari potestate) had
            preserved the memory of the consulship, and they had differed from
            the old consuls more in external matters than in the real powers of
            the office. Now the Licinian law re-established the original republican
            office, and made it not only accessible to the plebeians, but divided it
            formally between the two classes by enacting that every year one of the
            two consuls must be a plebeian.
            
          
          It is possible that Licinius and Sextius intended to restore the old consulship without any diminution of its original
            power. But this they were unable to effect. The patricians made a
            determined resistance, and they succeeded in separating from the consulship the
            judicial functions, and, in establishing for these functions,
            under the name of pratorship, a distinct office
            reserved exclusively for themselves. They saw in their acquaintance with
            and management of the laws a chief support of their power long after they
            had shared with the plebeians the command of the army. The plebeians
            yielded. The patricians, therefore, lost not more than a third part
            of the supreme magistracy, for the praetor was considered a colleague
            of the consuls, although his functions were not precisely the same. For
            about thirty years (till 366-337) the patricians remained in exclusive
            possession of the praetorship after they had been obliged to share with
            the plebeians every patrician office in the state, with the exception of
            those connected with religion.
            
          
          It is evident that the tenacity with which the
            patricians clung to the judicial office after they had given up to the
            plebeians a share in the consulship, censorship, and dictatorship, sprung not
            from their pride alone, nor was justified by a supposed incompetency of the
            plebeians to discharge this office. We cannot avoid accusing the noble
            patricians of common selfishness—a selfishness the more deserving
            of our reprobation as it made the administration of justice serve its
            purposes. As long as patricians alone acted as judges, the agrarian laws
            and the laws of debt which had been .passed in spite of their opposition,
            were not easily allowed to interfere with their interests. It was
            possible for them to regain in detail, by the administration of
            the laws, what they had lost by their enactment, and we know enough
            of patrician recklessness in fighting for the interests of their party to
            feel quite sure that they knew how to avail themselves of the advantages
            which the exclusive possession of the judicial office for a
            whole generation conferred on them.
            
          
          The increase of the chief offices of state effected by
            the establishment of the praetorship had been prepared during the time of
            the consular tribunes. When, in 366 BC, the patricians consented to a
            change by which, instead of two patrician consuls, three consular tribunes
            should he chap. elected from the two classes, it had evidently been
            their intention to reserve one of the three places for the judicial
            office, and not to admit plebeians to this place. This plan they now
            carried out; and perhaps they referred to it as a precedent when they
            formally separated the judicial office from the consulship, and handed it
            over to a praetor, to be elected from the patrician body.
            
          
          In a similar manner the new office of two patrician
            aediles had in a manner been established in the constitution of the consular tribunes.
            For it is extremely probable that, when the number of these officers
            was increased to six, two of them had to discharge the duties which
            were afterwards conferred on the curule aediles. These duties were
            essentially the same as those of the plebeian aediles, and consisted
            principally in the management of the town police.
            
          
          This gradual growth of the new constitution out of
            previously existing forms is one of the features which characterise the public
            life of the Roman people. In the history of the Roman constitution we never
            meet with a total revolution’ that breaks entirely with the past.
            It advances by way of reforms, and even when the spirit  and essence of the republic perished, its external forms
              remained, and softened for the mass of the people the transition to the
              monarchy, by hiding it from the superficial observer.
              
            
          Even before the final triumph of the Licinian laws,
            during the very heat of the contest, a reform .similar to the division of the
            consulship between the two orders is said to have taken place, namely, the
            increase of the officers for regulating religious festivals (duumviri sacris faciundis) from
            two to ten, and the admission of five plebeians to this office. The change
            was of considerable political importance, because these men had in their
            keeping the prophetic books, which could easily be made use of for party
            purposes. The admission of plebeians to this semi-priestly office was,
            moreover, of importance to the plebs, because the domain of religion was
            that which the patricians guarded with the greatest jealousy from
            the encroachments of their antagonists.
            
          
          By the passing of the Licinian laws, the relation of
            the two orders to each other was finally determined. The principle was
            established that patricians and plebeians were both citizens of the state,
            and equally eligible to the honours and dignities of the republic. It is
            true that the patricians, even after this period, made several
            attempts to regain the exclusive possession of the consulship,
            and, indeed, succeeded several times, in open defiance of
            the Licinian laws, in electing two patrician consuls; but after 343 366 b.c. this was not attempted again, and from
            that time forward the plebeians remained in undisputed possession of their
            share of the chief magistracy. In the first year after the Licinian laws,
            the exclusive right of the patricians to the curule aedileship was set aside, and there appear from henceforth alternately year after
            year pairs of patrician and plebeian aediles. The dictatorship became
            accessible to the plebeians in 356 BC; the censorship in 351 BC; though it
            was not till 280 BC that a plebeian censor was allowed to perform the
            solemn act by which a new census was made and ratified (called
            in technical language condere lustrum).
            In 337 BC the plebeians obtained access to the praetorship. Still
            the priestly offices remained closed to them until, sixty-six years
            after the Licinian laws, the law of Ogulnius divided the pontificate and augurate between the two orders; but the
            old offices of the Salii, of the Arvalian brethren, of the Fetiales, and lastly of the
            sacrificial king, which possessed no political importance, always remained
            in possession of the patrician order.
            
          
          
             
          
          CHAPTER IV.
                
          
          THE FIRST SAMNITE WAR
                
          
          343-311 B.C.
                
          
          
             
          
          In the beginning of the Roman history we find four
            different races in possession of Italy—the Etruscans, the Greeks, the
            Gauls, and the Sabellians. All of these had immigrated into Italy, but
            only of the immigration of the Etruscans, Greeks, and Gauls was any
            accurate tradition preserved. The Sabellians, therefore, may be looked
            upon as the genuine Italians, and the more so as they were the parent
            stock whose branches gradually overspread the peninsula, and caused their
            language and customs to prevail over the others. The Etruscans, Greeks,
            and Gauls gradually lost their political independence and
            national peculiarities. Italy ceased to be in the south ‘a
            larger Greece,’ in the centre a country of the Etruscans, in
            the north a Gaul. It was the Sabines who made it one country,
            imprinted on it the stamp of one nationality, and spread that language and
            those political institutions which extensively and for a long period
            determined the whole history of the world. But before the various
            Sabellian peoples found in Rome their common centre and head,
            a collision took place between their two most powerful members, the Romans
            and the Samnites, who waged war against each other with few interruptions
            for two generations (343-272 BC). The final decision was in favour of Rome, and
            established for ever the incontestable preeminence of
            that city and its title to dominion over Italy.
            
          
          That the Sabellians did originally immigrate by the
            land route from the north, and not by sea is clear from the fact that they
            had possession of the middle and mountainous part of the peninsula and in
            historical time moved from north to south. Their most northern
            tribe, the Umbrians, had been very widely spread in
            prehistoric times, from the Adriatic Sea to the countries which
            were possessed at a later period by the Gauls and Etruscans.
            
          
          In the most elevated valleys of the Abruzzi,
            surrounded by the snow-capped summits of Gran Sasso and Velino, dwelt the Sabines, who, longer than
            any other Sabellian race, preserved their national peculiarities, and
            were therefore considered in later times as models of
            ancestral simplicity, hardiness, and virtue. From these high mountain
            lands the different races descended like streams that flood and fertilise
            the deep-lying valleys and plains. The Latins, whom we meet first in the
            neighbourhood of the Tiber, belonged to the oldest of these
            successive streams. Then came the Sabines from Cures, of whom
            the history of regal Rome, has so much to relate. To the same race
            belonged the Aequians and the Volscians, whose wild onset was broken by
            the stout resistance of the young Roman republic, as also a number of
            other Sabellian nations on both sides of the peninsula.
            
          
          South of the highest peak of the Abruzzi, the mountain
            chain of the Apennines rises again in huge masses to the height of 6,000
            feet. These high lands, now called Monte Matese,
            spread around the source of the Volturaus,
            and command the plain of Campania traversed by that river. Here dwelt
            two Sabellian races, the Pentrians in the
            north and the Caudinians in the south, who
            retained the common name of their race but very slightly changed, and
            were called by the Romans Samnites. The same name is occasionally
            applied to other tribes, such as the Hirpinians on
            their southern frontier, the Picentines and the Frentanians who lived on the Adriatic Sea. We must guard
            against supposing that common descent and kindred blood implied political
            union. It is even doubtful whether the Pentrians and the Caudinians always were united. At
            any rate we know that, when the Samnites are mentioned, it is by no
            means certain that all the races which shared this name are referred to
            
          
          Of the social and political institutions of the
            Samnites The we have no authentic account. They were rude but not savage
            mountaineers, hardened by their mode of life, warlike, enterprising, and bold.
            Although inclined to pillage and plunder, in which the wars of rude
            nations principally consist, they did not carry on war as
            mere robbers and incendiaries. Not inferior to the Romans in military
            equipment, in the arts of war, or in strategy, they were in every respect
            worthy antagonists. . But they had one weak point; they had no firm
            political unity, and this want caused them to succumb. The individual
            townships or cantons, it appears, lived almost completely
            independent in their secluded valleys; there were no large towns in
            the country, and there was no centre like Rome, where the strength of
            the people might have been combined for common action. For the conduct of
            the general affairs of the nation the heads of the separate tribes met
            and formed a sort of senate, which, however, could not have the
            support of an assembly of the people, as the senate had in Rome. There
            were no regular magistrates chosen year by year, to whose hand the
            executive power might be intrusted with safety. The kingly office was
            unknown. In war they had common military chiefs; but it is doubtful how
            far these chiefs could enforce obedience among the different members of the
            league. We may take for granted that the confederacy of the Samnites
            suffered from the defects and vices which are inherent in
            all alliances of sovereign or partly sovereign states.
            
          
          While Rome was fighting with the Aquinas and the
            Volscians for the dominion of Latium, the Samnites sent successive swarms
            of conquerors to the south of the peninsula. The Lucanians and Bruttians subdued the inland districts where along the
            coast the numerous Greek colonies stretched from Campania even to
            Tarentum. But more especially were they attracted by the fruitful
            plains of Campania. Here the Etruscans had founded or conquered a number
            of towns at the time of their national power and greatness, when they
            ruled over Rome and Latium. All these fell one after another into the
            hands of Samnite conquerors. According to the Roman tradition Capua,
            the most important of these, was lost in the year 331 BC, and the smaller
            places—Calatia, Suessula, Acerrte, Nola, Atella—which
            covered the plain of Campania, shared the same fate, as did also Cumae, the
            oldest Greek settlement on Italian ground. Naples alone was able to
            preserve her independence, and in this last refuge the Greek language and
            Greek civilisation were preserved, when in almost all other places the
            Greek element had been overpowered by barbarians.
            
          
          The Samnite conquerors of Campania were soon estranged
            from their own countrymen. No political union bound the Samnite colonies to the
            mother country. The Campanians, like the Bruttians and Lucanians, became an independent people. They seem even to have
            forgotten that they were of the same blood with the mountain tribes of
            the Apennines. They intermarried with the original inhabitants of the
            conquered districts, and in its mild climate and fertile soil they lost
            their old simplicity and contentment, and even their bravery. In Campania
            the Greeks and the Etruscans had vied with each other in accumulating the
            products of highly developed industry and extensive commercial enterprise. In
            this beautiful land there had arisen, under such favourable opportunities, a
            refined enjoyment of life, its luxuries and comforts, unknown to the rude
            mountaineers of the Apennines. Capua was at this time one of the richest and most
            populous towns of Italy, and the bad character which the inhabitants had
            then and afterwards for effeminacy and indulgence, though perhaps
            exaggerated and in some cases unjust, was certainly not quite without
            foundation.
            
          
          Another cause contributed to weaken the new Sabellian
            community of Capua. The conquerors formed a nobility factions, distinct from
            the mass of the people. They were constantly at variance with the common
            people, and seemed to regard the state and the productive industry of
            the people as their private property. While in Rome the patricians
            and plebeians had gradually become one united people, the breach between
            the ruling and the subject class in Capua was so widened that the two
            parties applied for help from abroad. The nobles directed their hopes to
            Rome; the people endeavoured to join the Samnites. This fatal discord
            could not fail to make Campania the prey of either the one or the other
            powerful neighbour who were lying in wait for an opportunity to seize upon
            that beautiful country.
            
          
          Such an opportunity was found but too easily. The Sidicinians, a Sabellian people between Campania and
            Latium, were hard pressed by the Samnites and received help from the
            Campanians. But even the two peoples affairs. united were not equal to the
            Samnites. On the mountain of Tifata, which forms
            a natural stronghold near Capua, the Samnites established themselves,
            devastated the country, and defeated the Campanians as often as
            they ventured to meet them. The latter in their distress now turned
            to Rome, asked and received Roman assistance; and thus, in the year 343 BC,
            the Romans and the Samnites met for the first time as enemies in open war. The
            Romans had been, as we have already seen, allied with the Samnites since
            the year 354 BC. Of what nature the alliance was we do not know, hut it is
            extremely probable that it was not merely a declaration of
            mutual friendship, but that there was a distinct object in view. This
            object we may venture to suppose was to reduce the hostile nations
            dwelling between Rome and Samnium, especially the Volscians and the Sidicinians. The Romans had, therefore, no sort of
            excuse for mixing themselves up in a quarrel between the Samnites and their
            neighbours. This was felt by the annalists, who
            made it their task to represent the policy of Rome not only as successful,
            but as just and magnanimous. They expect us to believe, therefore,
            that the senate declined the request of the Campanians, because Rome would
            not stand in the way of their allies, the Samnites. Thereupon the
            Campanians, it is related, surrendered themselves in due form as subjects
            to the Romans, and now the senate determined to take steps in favour of
            the town of Capua, which had become Roman. This story is confessedly
            false, for Capua remained, what it had been, an independent town.
            The Roman senate, if it found occasion to adopt the cause of the
            Campanians and Sidicinians, had probably a
            better plea than a fictitious surrender of Capua and her territory to
            Rome. At any rate war was declared. The Roman annalists related long
            stories of fierce combats, and three hard-fought but decisive victories.
            But all these reports are either manifest and reckless exaggerations or
            downright fictions.
            
          
          A connected history of the war cannot he made out of
            the contradictory and confused accounts. It appears that the Samnites were
            not equal to the Romans and their allies. At least they could not maintain
            their position in Campania, and at the end of a campaign of one
            year’s duration, a Roman army kept possession of Capua. The time
            seemed to have come when the republic could plant a firm foot beyond the
            bounds of Latium. Campania, the apple of discord between the Samnites and
            the Romans, seemed to have fallen to the share of the latter; and
            the pretended surrender of Capua seemed to turn out a real conquest,
            when suddenly an internal dispute arose which arrested the Romans in their
            bold career of victory, and conjured up indirectly a desperate contest for
            their existence with their oldest and most faithful allies and kinsmen,
            the Latins.
            
          
          
             
          
          CHAPTER V.
                
          
          THE MUTINY OF THE YEAR 342 B.C.
                
          
          After the settlement of the civil contest, and the
            passing of the Licinian law, 367 BC, Camillus, we are told, consecrated a
            temple to Concord. But it was an illusion to hope that discord would
            henceforth be banished for ever. It is true, the contest was not renewed
            with the animosity that had been displayed before, but patricians and
            plebeians were equally far removed from the true spirit which should
            animate the members of one community. The consciousness of defeat on the
            one side, and on the other the feeling of having gained but half a
            victory, could produce an apparent peace only during the time of
            mutual exhaustion. The patricians had not yet entirely given up the
            hope of regaining what they had lost;; nor could the plebeians stop half
            way, and rest satisfied with a reform which reserved for the old nobility
            the highest judicial and other offices.
            
          
          It is not reported whether the provisions of the
            Licinian laws regarding the relief of debtors and the common land were
            conscientiously carried out. We may reasonably doubt it when we learn
            that, twelve years after the solemn peace between the two classes (355
            BC), the most important reform of the Licinian laws, the division of the
            consulate between patricians and plebeians, was violated. The reactionary
            party of the nobility carried the election of two patricians, and the same
            open breach of the law was repeated in the next ten years not less than
            six times. It was a bad time for the plebeians, and it is natural that, under
            such, circumstances, the material interests of the plebeian class should
            suffer, in spite of the provisions of the Licinian laws. The agrarian law, we
            may be sure, was not carried out where it interfered with the patrician interests.
              But it is very probable that the ruling party made concessions to the
              people in minor matters, so that in the main they might keep the
              advantage.
              
            
          Thus we hear that in the year 357 the rate of interest
            was fixed at one-twelfth of the capital per annum, and ten years later a
            further reduction to one-half of this rate took place. It is further
            mentioned that in the year 352 a commission of five, three of whom were
            plebeians, was formed, who, by advancing money out of the public treasury,
            were to assist debtors who were in difficulties, but could give security to the
            state for repayment of an advance. We are unable, owing to the
            scantiness of our information, to ascertain exactly the effect of
            such measures. It is not impossible that, as Livy relates, debtors
            and creditors were satisfied; but we ought to know much more of the
            existing circumstances to feel quite sure that this was really the case.
            We can imagine reasons why the creditors made a sacrifice from political
            motives, and abated a portion of their legal demands, in order
            that, on the other hand, they might be allowed to have their own way
            in the appropriation of the state lands and in the administration of the
            republic. But the state continued to suffer from the great amount of
            indebtedness of the plebeians, and from various other evils. This was
            brought to light by the mutiny of 342, which was not merely the symptom of
            an accidental passing discomfort, but the outbreak of a long-repressed and
            deeply-seated malady of the state.
            
          
          The accounts of this mutiny differ so materially that,
            according to Livy, nothing is certain but that a mutiny took place and was
            put down. The different reports are indeed singular and obscure, partly on
            account of their brevity and incompleteness, partly as
            contradicting one another; but to such things we are accustomed
            in our authorities for the history of the time of which we are speaking.
            It has even happened that, in several reports of the same event, differing
            materially the one from the other, we have been able to discover a more
            genuine historical tradition than in perfectly smooth and
            rectified accounts. Completeness of the narrative we are, at
            this stage, very far from expecting. We have still to deal with
            fragments, and may be well satisfied if among these fragments we discover
            here and there traces of genuine historical testimony. Let us try to
            discover such in the accounts of the mutiny of 342 BC.
            
          
          After the victorious campaign against the Samnites,
            343 BC, it is said the Roman legions wintered in Campania, in order to protect
            Capua and Suessula against the attacks of the
            Samnites during the winter. The luxurious life in that favoured country
            made the Roman soldiers forget their fatherland, and they conceived the
            treacherous plan of attacking the Capuans, of
            murdering them, and thus taking possession of their land, just as the Capuans themselves, eighty years before, had acted
            towards the former inhabitants. The plan became known, and was frustrated
            by the consul C. Marcius Rutilus. He discharged the most dangerous of the
            mutineers, and sent them home either singly or in small troops.
            Thus the army was purified of the most licentious soldiers. Meanwhile
            the men who had been discharged banded themselves together, marched
            against Rome, and placed by force a noble patrician, T. Quinctius,
            at their head, as commander. The dictator, M. Valerius Corvus, led an army against them. But instead of a battle, a
            friendly meeting took place, and the civil war was ended by
            the enactment of a new fundamental law (lex sacrata),
            proposed by the senate, and carried by a resolution of the people. Of
            the provisions of this law, which was no doubt tolerably comprehensive,
            only one is specified, viz., that no Roman soldier should be discharged
            from service without his consent, and that a military tribune should not
            be lowered to the rank of a centurion. Livy also mentions, as
            a demand of the soldiers, that the pay of the cavalry, which was
            three times as much as the pay of the common legionary soldiers, should be
            reduced. But, according to other accounts, the conditions of peace
            contained far more sweeping and general regulations and real
            fundamental reforms. One law, according to this account, forbade
            the re-election of a consul within ten years, and the appointment at one
            time to more than one office. The most startling innovation, however, is a
            resolution of the people, on the proposal of the tribune L. Genucius, which forbade all interest on loans.
            
          
          What Livy says of the various reports as to the name
            of the commander of the mutinous troops, and the representative of the senate
            during these negotiations, is of no importance, and shows, as we have
            said, that many independent and different traditions existed, which on the
            whole confirm the fact of a grave commotion in the year 342. What is
            important to us is, to discover the object of the reform of this year, and
            to find the reason for it in the condition in which the state and the
            nation were. The regulations which forbade the discharge of soldiers
            against their will and the degradation of the military tribunes are only
            fragments of a general law, which was not confined to the two named
            classes, but included all ranks. It was intended to put an end to the caprice
            of the consuls, from whom, twenty years before (362 BC), the nomination of six
            military tribunes, out of four and twenty for each legion, had been taken,
            in order to transferred to the people. This limitation of the free
            choice of the consuls was not decided upon because those so nominated
            possessed less military ability than those who were elected by a majority
            of votes in a popular assembly. On the contrary, if military ability alone
            had been considered, the choice might have been safely left to the
            consuls, who, as commanders-in-chief, were more interested than anybody in
            having efficient officers under them. But other things besides
            military efficiency came into consideration. The rank which a man held
            in the legion regulated, in the first instance, his pay. Next to this it
            determined the share of plunder to which he was entitled—a material
            consideration with a Roman soldier. In the third place, it fixed the
            proportion of land which he was to receive in case of colonies being
            established in the conquered territory. It was therefore possible for the
            commanding consul, by freely controlling the rank of the officers, and by
            dismissing or retaining the soldiers at pleasure, to deprive those
            who were obnoxious to him, or even whole classes of citizens,
            of their share in the profits of a war. Such acts of injustice must
            have taken place frequently; and it was natural that the soldiers should
            seek to prevent a repetition of these wrongs, after a victorious campaign
            in Campania, especially if they could look forward to an allotment
            of land in that country. Thus may the singular phenomenon be
            explained, that the people protested, not against compulsory service, but
            against summary discharge.
            
          
          How far the other parts of the reform of the year 342
            BC harmonised with the leading idea just detailed cannot be determined
            with certainty. The demand that the pay of the cavalry, which was three
            times as much as that of the infantry, should be reduced, is easily
            understood. The consideration, that every man’s, share of the booty was
            regulated by the amount of pay which he received was, we may readily suppose,
            one motive. The prohibition of a plurality of offices in one hand, and of the
              too frequent re-election to the consulship, may be explained in the same
              way; for the movement of the year 342 was clearly democratic, and directed
              against the new nobility. In consequence of the recent conquests, the Roman
              posts of honour had begun to be, in a higher degree than before, the
              sources of influence and wealth; and democratic jealousy soon began an
              opposition which considering the rapacious character of the Roman
              nobility, was but too well justified.
              
            
          The startling statement that at this time a law of the
            tribune Genucius abolished altogether the taking of
            interest for loans remains to be examined. Such a law, it is true, is foolish
            and ineffectual; but nevertheless such laws have been enacted in several
            countries, after the example of the Jews. Yet it is difficult to believe
            that such a rational people as the Romans ever adopted it, especially
            as the practice of taking interest was sanctioned by a law of the Twelve
            Tables, and again, in 356 and 343, by laws which did not forbid the taking
            of interest, but fixed the legal rate. We cannot believe that the
            Mosaic law against all taking of interest could ever have found acceptance
            in Rome. If, therefore, the account of the Genucian law is not entirely fictitious, it must be differently understood and
            explained.
            
          
          The laws of loans and interest are modelled upon
            usages interest which were common before money existed. The first loans
            were land and cattle. The portion of the produce of land and of the
            increase of cattle given by the borrower to the lender was the natural
            acknowledgment of a service rendered. The Greek and Latin words for
            interest show this clearly. Rent, whether paid in kind or in money, is nothing
            but interest paid for the loan of land. The first payers of interest:, or
            debtors, were therefore those cultivators of the soil who were not by law
            acknowledged as the owners, but as tenants of others who owned the fee
            simple. Hence the constant indebtedness of that class of people who
            among the Romans were, called clients, and the manner in which clients and
            debtors are spoken of as one class. The old Roman clientela was a subjection of this sort. It disappeared by degrees, and was gone
            before the time of contemporary history. It could exist no longer
            than the obligation of the clients to pay an annual rent or
            interest lasted. If the Genucian law, therefore,
            had reference not to money loans—which were after all not affected by it,
            as interest continued to be paid, and was never considered illegal—it
            must have been intended to abolish client-rents, either on the old estates
            of the patricians, or, which seems more likely, on newly acquired land.
            Thus we can understand its meaning and its influence on the economical development
            of the Roman people. The right of occupation had been limited by the Licinian
            law. But it may well be presumed that, in spite of this legal
            limitation, many peasants actually became dependent on great landowners,
            not only by borrowing capital for the purpose of being enabled to
            cultivate the land assigned to them, but also by illegal occupation, on
            the part of the stronger, of lands which were taken possession of by the
            poorer.' It was therefore natural that the Roman citizens
            should endeavour to guard themselves against falling into a new clientela just at a time when there were prospects of
            new conquests in the fertile land of Campania. The situation of the plebeians,
            and of the Roman state in general, at this time, is very similar to that
            which existed after the conquest of Veii. At that time also the plebeians
            laid claim to an unencumbered free possession of land in the newly
            acquired country. Their claims were resisted by the old nobility, and
            misrepresented in the annals. It was said that they had wished to forsake or to
            divide Rome, and to settle in Veil. Precisely in the same way the
            story of the Roman soldiers intending to take violent possession. of
            Capua is nothing hut a tradition, distorted in the interest of the
            aristocracy, that the Roman soldiers—that is, the plebeians who fought in
            the legions—claimed, as by right, the possession of the land which they
            had won from the Samnites in war as free settlers. Whether the
            senate then intended to found a colony in Campania we cannot say. It
            was, however, a step which they were very likely to take after a
            victorious war against the Samnites, and we can easily understand that the
            soldiers showed an intention to put in their claims, if such a
            contingency should arise. The mutiny which broke out was as intense as any
            that had yet shaken the state. It brought forth a new fundamental law,
            which, it is true, is very imperfectly known to us, but which seems to have
            established the principle that on newly acquired lands all
            Roman citizens should be settled as freeholders, not as patrons and
            clients.
            
          
          This view of the arrangement of 342 BC is borne out by
            a further consideration. It appears that the concessions made to the
            insurgent troops were not extended to the Latins. It was not the intention
            of the Roman senate, nor of the Roman people, to equalise the rights of
            Roman citizens and their Latin allies. This humiliating distinction was
            felt by the Latins as a grievance, and was no doubt the cause of the
            extreme animosity with which, immediately afterwards, they took up arms
            against Rome.
            
          
          
             
          
          CHAPTER VI.
                
          
          THE GREAT WAR WITH THE LATINS.
                
          
          339-338 B.C.
                
          
          
             
          
          We have already had occasion to remark, that the old league
            between Rome and Latium, besides being weak and insufficient for mutual
            protection, was also oppressive and prejudicial to the weaker members. The
            league suffered not only from the defects inherent in all federal bodies,
            inasmuch as the interests of the whole are often in conflict with those of a
            part, but there was wanting from the very beginning an essential condition for
            true confederation, namely, equality in strength among the members. Rome, by
            her preponderance over each of the other towns of the league, was the
            acknowledged permanent head, and rose from an equality of power to absolute
            dominion. Her policy was decided by her own interests, and the other towns had
            to serve this interest either willingly or under compulsion. The Latins, who
            were of the same race as the Romans, equally proud, bold, and jealous of their
            freedom, were conscious of the unfairness with which they were treated, and of
            the disadvantageous position in which they were placed as the allies of Rome.
            While they were always losing territory by the aggressions of the Volscians in
            the south of Latium, the Romans had, with their help, overthrown the powerful
            city of Veii on the north of the Tiber, and had incorporated this great and
            fertile territory, not with the Latin league, but with the Roman state. It is
            more than probable that the interruption of friendly relations between Rome and
            her allies, which took place after the burning of the city by the Gauls, was
            caused by the selfish policy of the Romans and not by her
            alleged helplessness.
            
          
          Strengthened by the recent conquest of Veii, Rome had
            gained more than ever such a preponderating influence Home and over her
            allies—especially since the internal disputes between patricians and plebeians
            were almost settled by the Licinian laws—that in the year 358 two new
            districts, taken from the Volscians in the heart of Latium, could
            be made into Roman tribes. The Latins had to submit and to renew the
            old league under much less favourable circumstances. Soon after this (343 BC)
            the war broke out with Samnium. New acquisitions of territory were
            in prospect, when it was seen that the Samnites were not able to
            resist the united power of the Romans, the Latins, and the Campanians. The
            Roman legions began to get a firm footing in Campania, and it was
            assuredly not the intention of the senate to share with their allies the
            rich spoils which the Roman nobility grudged even to their own
            plebeian fellow-citizens. The mutiny of 342 BC, with the internal reform
            arising out of this, was a purely Roman affair. There was no thought of
            concessions to the allies. Rome had determined to proceed in this
            path. If Latium did not now resist, it was doomed to lose even the
            shadow of independence, and to be absorbed by Rome.
            
          
          Then the national pride and the spirit of the brave
            Latins began to rise. In the Samnite war they had shown themselves equal to the
            Romans in every warlike quality. There were still in Latium a number of
            unbroken peoples and fortified towns, smaller indeed than Rome, but well
            able to resist an enemy. There were the ancient Tibur, the strong
            Praeneste, Aricia, once the head of a separate alliance, Lanuvium and the venerable Lavinium,
            the stubborn Velitrae—which, as it is
            reported, had repeatedly been conquered by Rome, and colonised, and yet
            had rebelled again—and other towns of less note. These were joined by the
            Volscians of Antium and Privernum,
            who in these conquered Latin towns had become Latins themselves, and
            shared the common danger with Latium. A new spirit was awakened
            in all these peoples. They prosecuted the war against the Samnites
            independently, after Rome had in a faithless manner concluded a separate
            peace. The peoples also south of the Liris, even those in Campania, had
            discovered the intention of Rome which was threatening them, and they
            were prepared to fight for their independence. The Romans had no choice
            but to seek assistance from the Samnites, whom they had just conquered,
            against such a threatening combination ; nor did they scruple to
            unite themselves with these their recent enemies against the Latins,
            who had been their faithful allies for a long series of years, who were
            connected with them by the ties of kindred and blood, and who were almost
            their fellow citizens. Of the immediate cause of the war between Rome and
            Latium Livy gives the following report.
            
          
          In the year 341 BC the two praetors of the Latins, L. Annius, of Setia, and L. Minucius,
            of Circeii, came to Rome at the head of an
            embassy, to lay before the senate the grievances and desires of the
            Latins, and to specify the conditions on which they were willing that the
            old league should be maintained. They demanded, as once the plebeians had
            demanded, a share in the government; one of the two consuls and one-half
            of the senate were to be Latins. This proposal was rejected with
            indignation, as if it were a desecration of the Roman Capitol, and a sin
            against the gods of the town, that a Latin should dare to prefer such
            a claim in the Roman senate. The intercession of the magistrates was
            scarcely able to protect the Latin ambassadors from the rage of the
            people. They had to leave Rome in haste, and the Romans resolved on war
            without delay.
            
          
          The claim of the Latins was, according to our feeling
            and our idea of justice, natural and equitable. They only desired a share in
            the full citizenship of the state, which they defended every day with
            their property and their blood, with which they were united by many years
            of common sufferings, and by victories gained in common, by blood-relationship and
            intermarriage, by thousands of social ties, by speaking the same language
            and worshipping the same gods. They did not desire to rule over Rome; they
            only wished for protection against unfair treatment. Their situation was
            almost the same as that of the plebeians towards the patricians when
            the latter laid claim to be alone the Roman people, to form the senate,
            and to conduct the government. In both cases the dispute was principally
            about the share in the higher privileges of Roman citizenship. Such a
            share was at the same time a protection against wrong and neglect in
            all the relations of civil life, and a title to share in the advantages
            which were the fruits of victory. The last point ought not, to be
            overlooked, although in the received story it is always passed over. It
            concerned the peoples of antiquity in a much higher degree than we
            with our present views can imagine possible. In modern times a war
            between two nations affects only the constituted authorities, and not
            every citizen in his private capacity. The state as such, with its armed
            public force and with the public money, carries on the war. Citizens
            not serving in the army take no part in actual
            hostilities; consequently their persons as well as their property remain
            inviolate. What is not actually required for the wants of the belligerent
            armies, remains undisturbed to the peaceful possessor, and no confiscation
            of private property takes place, even after the total defeat of
            an enemy.
            
          
          All this was quite different in antiquity. Every
            single citizen had to stake, in every war, not only his life and his
            personal freedom, not only the life and the freedom of those belonging to
            him, of his wife and his children, but all that he possessed. In this
            respect the wars of antiquity were mostly predatory. They were not
            carried on for an idea, for religion, or to inforce a disputed succession, but for the possession of fruitful plains, rich
            mines and pasturage, of treasures of temples and of works of art.
            Hence it was that the bond which united the citizens of the states of antiquity
            was so strong and so important, their patriotism so intense, their wars so
            obstinate. He who had a share in all the privileges of a citizen—he, and
            he alone, had also a share of the spoils and of the conquered lands. The
            half-citizen, the protected ally, shared indeed the dangers of the war,
            but was shut out from its advantages. For this reason the Latins and
            the Hernicans had stipulated with the Romans, in the first treaty,
            that they should receive each a third of the spoils and fruits of victory.
            As long as the confederacy was limited to the defence of its territory,
            such a stipulation was of no practical importance. When Rome began
            to grow strong, she paid no attention to it. It must have been clear
            to the Latins that, so long as they were without the pale of the Roman
            state, they would always be curtailed in the division of the spoils. Only as
            Roman citizens could they hope to be treated with justice; and from
            this motive primarily may we explain their desire to obtain the Roman
            franchise.
            
          
          The exact form of the demand of the Latins has been
            obscured in the popular account of their embassy. It differed no doubt very
            materially from that related by Livy. They could hardly claim that one of
            the two consuls and one-half of the senators should be nominated from the
            Latins. The internal order of the Roman state, according to which the consulate
            was divided between patricians and plebeians, would have been disturbed
            by such an arrangement. The claim would also have entailed the
            division of other political offices, as, for instance, that of the
            tribunes, between Latins and Romans, a demand of which nothing is
            reported. No more could the Latins claim to elect half the senate. The
            senate, which consisted for the most part, and certainly in its most
            influential members, of former magistrates, would have been
            made incapable of governing the state. On the other hand, something
            which was necessarily an important part of the demand of the Latins, and
            which must even be supposed to have been the primary condition of a closer
            union, is not mentioned. This was the reception of the whole
            of Latium into the Roman tribes, or more probably the establishment
            of new tribes out of the Latin territory. Had such a demand been acceded
            to, every legitimate wish of the Latins would have been gratified.
            Rome granted this at a later period voluntarily, but under materially
            altered circumstances, when it received the different districts of Latium,
            of the Volscian, Aequian, and Hernican territory
            into the Roman tribes. But before this took place a time had elapsed in
            which Roman law, and Roman citizens as landowners, had gained a
            firm footing in those districts, so that the amalgamation of that
            territory with the Roman did not take place until the inhabitants had
            really become Romans.
            
          
          When the senate ungraciously dismissed the Latin
            embassy, it was aware that war was unavoidable and the danger most serious. It
            was not a war concerning the possession of a disputed territory, but a
            long postponed contest, which was to decide whether Rome was
            entitled to dominion, or whether she was destined to be simply one of
            several members of a league ; it was not a war with a foreign nation, but
            with men of the same race; in fact it was almost a civil war. For
            centuries the Latins and the Romans had had the same institutions, political,
            religious, and social. They formed one people, only
            accidentally distributed over different places and districts. On
            the high Alban mount, which overlooks the whole of the Latin plain,
            they celebrated every year their common festival in honour of their
            tutelary god, Jupiter Latiaris. The civil institutions
            of the towns, and their military organisation, were everywhere the same, and
            not different from those of Rome. There was nothing to distinguish Romans
            and Latins in arms or tactics. Their courage was equal, so was their
            military experience and practice; in numbers, too, the two armies were
            nearly balanced. In one point only Rome was infinitely superior, and this
            superiority decided the victory. Rome was a united
              state; the Latins formed a confederation.
            
          
          One ominous sign of the weakness inherent in the Latin
            confederation was this, that not all the Latin towns took a share in the
            war with Rome. Laurentum remained faithful to Rome;
            other places were neutral. The Latins could still less reckon on all the
            Volscians and Campanians as true allies. Fundi and Formiae showed themselves friendly to the Romans, and granted them a free
            passage through their territory. Io Capua there was internal dissension..
            The democratic party favoured the Latins. The nobility were on the side of
            the Romans, and rendered such valuable services during the war
            that after the Roman victory they received their especial reward at the
            expense of the democrats. Whether more dissensions occurred among the
            enemies of Rome, we do not know. It is certain that Rome used every
            opportunity to cause division among her enemies, and that if the nobles in
            any single state were at enmity with the people, they had only to turn
            towards her to find ready assistance.
            
          
          The Romans opened the war by a march, which, by a long
            circuitous way round the east of Latium, brought them right through the
            country of the Marsians and Pelignians to Samnium. Being joined by a
            Samnite army, they invaded Campania. This plan of the campaign, which
            was suggested by their alliance with the Samnites, was bold but safe. The
            city of Rome, it is true, was left to the protection of her citizens alone, and
            the whole chap. armed force of four legions marched into a distant country,  where they were separated by the forces of the
            Latins and Volscians from their home and the base of their operations. But the Roman
            army had, in case of necessity, its retreat open towards Samnium, and by
            attacking the Latins from the south they compelled them to turn towards
            Campania, and thus they indirectly protected their capital. We cannot fail
            to recognise here a well-studied, ingenious plan. The operations are
            grander and more complicated than those of the former wars with the
            Volscians and the Etruscans. They rise to the character and the
            proportions which led the Romans on to victory in the successive wars with
            the Samnites, Greeks, and Carthaginians.
            
          
          The campaign in Campania was remembered in the popular
            tradition chiefly by two stories, connected with campaign, the names of
            the two consuls, and derived, perhaps, from the family chronicles of the Manlii and the Decii. It is
            the horrible tradition of two human sacrifices which fell as offerings
            to Roman discipline and patriotism—the tradition of the execution of young
            Manlius by his father, the consul T. Manlius Torquatus,
            and of the self-devotion of the consul P. Decius Mus. 
            
          
          The consul T. Manlius is one of those Roman heroes of
            the olden time on whom the legend growing into history loves to linger.
            Whilst of most of his contemporaries we know nothing more than their
            names, or some isolated actions, or their general character, it seems that
            we can discover in this man distinct features and individual qualities. He
            was a genuine Roman—rude, uneducated, severe towards himself and towards
            others, valiant in the field, without consideration for duties and
            feelings which were not subservient to the greatness and well-being of
            his country. His father had already shown the same spirit before him.
            When, in the year 365 BC, one of those desolating plagues broke out which
            so often in antiquity filled the minds of the people with fear and
            superstition ,when by this plague the old Camillus was carried off, with many
            of the noblest men, and when the people, losing all hope from human aid,
            sought salvation from the gods alone,1 a long-forgotten religious custom
            was revived, by which, according to tradition, once in former times the
            fury of the plague had been allayed. It had been the custom to cause
            the chief magistrate, at the autumnal equinox, to drive a nail into the wall
            of the temple of Jupiter on the Capitol. L. Manlius was now elected
            dictator to drive in this nail. His dictatorship had no political object.
            It was merely a religious formality. But L. Manlius, who at that
            time, if not sooner, had gained for himself the surname ‘Imperiosus,’ endeavoured to act as a real dictator. He commanded
            the citizens to be enlisted, as if there were war with the Hernicans, and
            persisted in the levy with the utmost severity, punishing the refractory
            ones by stripes and imprisonment. When he was cheeked in
            this audacious abuse of authority by the unanimous intercession of the
            tribunes, and impeached by the tribune M. Pomponius on this account, and
            on the charge of educating his son Titus in a manner unbecoming his
            station, the latter hurried from his father’s farm in the
            country, where he was kept to ordinary peasant’s work, into the town,
            forced his way in the early morning into the house of the tribune, and
            threatened to murder him immediately if he did not swear to drop the
            accusation against his father. The same youth, soon after
            this, killed, in single combat, a gigantic Gaul, despoiled him of his
            necklace, and thus acquired the surname Torquatus.
            Now, during the rebellion of the Latins, he was made consul for the third time,
            and Livy puts into bis mouth the haughty speech to the Latin ambassadors
            in the senate : ‘If the sanctuary of the senate could be, so desecrated
            that a man of Setia ruled in it, h would come armed into the assembly, and
            strike down with bis sword the first Latin who met him.’
            
          
          When the war had broken out, and both the hostile The
            story armies lay encamped against each other in Campania, the consuls
            issued orders to the soldiers to avoid all irregular fighting, and all
            encounters with the enemy, and to take up the combat only on the explicit
            command of their superior officers. They apprehended a relaxation of military
            discipline if the Roman soldiers and the Latins, their old companions in arms,
            had opportunities of meeting singly. Then it happened that the son of the
            consul T. Manlius, who led a troop of cavalry, approached the enemy’s
            camp, and was challenged by Geminus Mettius, the commander of the Tusculan horse, with
            whom he was personally acquainted. Stung by the contemptuous words of
            the Tusculan, the fiery youth forgot the injunction of his father,
            accepted the challenge, and killed Mettius. In
            triumph he returned to the camp, decorated with the arms of his slain
            enemy, and accompanied by an exulting crowd of his men. Before his eyes
            floated, perhaps, the image of his father, marching through the lines of
            the camp, adorned with the necklace of the Gaul he had slain, and
            about to receive his deserved reward. But a far different reception
            awaited him. With a gloomy look his father turned away from him, assembled
            immediately the whole army by the blast of the trumpet, and pronounced the
            sentence of death over his victorious son. The safety of the state was not
            to suffer from parental indulgence. Military discipline, which was
            shaken by the conduct of the consul’s son, could only be restored by
            the blood of the offender. In the contest of duty and paternal love, the
            feeling of the Roman citizen triumphed. The blood of the son flowed before
            the eyes of the father. Paralysed at first with awe and terror, the
            assembly soon burst forth into lamentations and curses against the unnatural
            parent. The name of Manlius was hateful for all time, and the Roman youth
            were never reconciled to the heartless man who had raged against his own
            blood.
            
          
          The gods desired yet another sacrifice before they
            could acknowledge the Roman people as justified to rule over the various
            kindred tribes of Italy. A Roman consul must be prepared to sacrifice not
            only the life of his son, but his own life for the good of his country.
            This self-sacrifice was reserved for P. Decius Mus, the plebeian colleague
            of Manlius, a man who had once before saved a Roman army in the Samnite
            war by drawing on himself and a chosen band the attack of the enemy, and
            by exposing himself voluntarily to an apparently inevitable death. Both
            consuls, it is said,’ were warned in the same night by a dream, that one
            of the two hostile armies which were now confronting each other was doomed to
            perish, and that the general of the other must die. Victory would
            therefore he with that army whose general would devote himself to
            death, and with himself the army of the enemy. At a solemn sacrifice the
            haruspices saw in the entrails of the victims the confirmation of what had
            been revealed by dreams to the consuls, and neither of the two men
            trembled or shrunk from the task, which, as a Roman and a consul, he had
            to discharge. They agreed that he whose legions should begin to fall back
            in the battle should fulfil the command of the gods, and seek death as
            a pledge of victory for his country. The battle was fought by Mount
            Vesuvius. It was long undecided. On each side were warriors accustomed to
            conquer. At length the Romans on the side where Decius commanded fell
            into disorder and were driven back. The moment had now arrived for
            Decius to fulfil his fate. He sent for the chief pontiff, veiled his head,
            and repeated after the priest the sacred form of prayer: ‘0 Janus,
            Jupiter, Father Mars, Quirinus, Bellona, ye Lares, ye
            foreign and ye our native gods, ye gods who have power over us and our enemies,
            ye spirits of the departed, to you I pray, you I worship, from you I
            hope for this grace, that ye vouchsafe strength . and victory to the Roman
            people of the Quirites, and strike the enemies of the Roman people with
            terror, fear, and death. As I have pronounced the words, so do I now, on
            behalf of the commonwealth of the Roman people of the Quirites, of
            the army, the legions and the allies of the Roman people, devote with
            myself to the spirits of the departed and to the earth the legions and the
            allies of the enemy.’ Having uttered this prayer, Decius mounted his
            horse, still wrapped in his toga, and plunged into the thickest of
            the battle, seeking death for himself and victory for his army. When he
            was struck to death, the resistance of the Latins grew gradually weaker, and
            the day remained with the Romans.
            
          
          In spite of the death of the magnanimous Decius, the
            victory, it is said, was finally gained by a stratagem of Manlius, who deceived
            the Latins, kept back his last and the reserve, the triarii,
            and ordered them to advance when  the Latin triarii were exhausted. It appears that both families, the Decii as well as the Manlii, had their particular
            traditions regarding the great battle in which the Latins were overthrown, and
            the annalists did their utmost to combine the two. We shall not attempt to
            draw a picture of the battle. Such pictures belong to the latest products
            of contemporary history, and are not always intelligible and authentic,
            even if they are drawn by eyewitnesses or the commanding generals themselves.
            We shall have to be satisfied for a long while yet if we can only
            ascertain the issue of battles with certainty, for we are not nearly past
            the time of fictitious battles and victories. In the report of the battle
            of Mount Vesuvius, we are struck by the dishonesty of the Roman
            historians, who had nothing else to say of the allied Samnites
            than that they remained stationary in the distance at the foot of the
            mountain. We cannot believe for one moment that the warlike Samnites were
            idle spectators in a decisive battle. They probably fought against the
            allies of the Latins, the Volscians and Campanians.
            
          
          At any rate victory was on the side of the Romans and the
            Samnites. The Latins and their allies rallied again at Trifanum,
            but were overthrown with little trouble, and the war resolved itself into
            a number of small engagements. The Latins were not able to raise another
            force, and to meet the Romans in the field. They threw themselves into
            their fortified towns and hoped by an obstinate resistance to tire out the
            Romans. Thus the war was lengthened out for some time. The siege of a town
            fortified either by nature or by art was a difficult task, which before
            all things required time. The Romans of this age were not acquainted with
            the mechanical contrivances which at a later period they learnt from the
            Greeks, and which, however imperfectly, represented what we call artillery.
            They tried to obtain their object by the pertinacity with which they held out
            before a besieged town; they enclosed it by circumvallations,
            and gradually approached the walls with their ponderous
            battering-rams, after filling up the town-moats with earth and wood.
            If this was not possible, they relied on reducing the inhabitants by
            hunger. Such a proceeding was, however, possible only if the besieged town had
            no prospect of relief from without. As long as the enemy could keep
            possession of the field, the conquest of a fortified place was very uncertain.
            On this the Latins calculated. Every single town in Latium was a fortress,
            defended by perpendicular cliffs or by strong walls. Some towns, such as
            Praeneste, were acknowledged to be impregnable. It is therefore not
            to be wondered at that the Romans, even after two decisive victories, had
            still a difficult task before they could hope to make the Latins submit.
            We hear of a long-continued and at first unsuccessful siege of Pedum, a town seldom mentioned, which, in comparison
            with Tibur, Praeneste, Velitrae, Lanuvium, and Antium, must
            have been very inconsiderable. In the following year a victory of the
            Romans, near an unknown river called Astura,
            is reported, over the forces of Aricia, Lanuvium,
            and Velitrae, and now at last Pedum was taken. About this time, the important town
            of Antium, which by its fleet had kept the
            immediate neighbourhood of Rome in alarm, fell into the hands of the
            Romans.
            
          
          We may presume that the other towns of Latium suffered
            or feared the same fate. The Hernicans remained neutral, or, what is more
            probable, assisted the Romans, according to their duty as members of the
            old confederation. That neither they nor the Samnites are mentioned in the
            final overthrow of, Latium is, as we have often seen, to be explained from
            the custom of the Roman annalists, who were
            always bent on appropriating- all the glory .to themselves. But the
            victory of the Romans was by no means decided by one blow, nor was it a
            victory over all the Latins. It is distinctly said of the Laurentines that they remained faithful to Rome, and
            we may assume that Praseneste as well as Tibur
            terminated the war by an honourable peace which left them independent.
            Rome understood how to divide her enemies. She recognised the
            confederation the Latins no longer after she had retired from it. Only
            separately she negotiated with her enemies, and the different towns
            obtained peace under different conditions, as the interest of Rome or the
            ability of resistance possessed by each might dictate.
            
          
          Tibur and Praeneste were treated most leniently, not
            because they had been less violently opposed to Rome, but because their
            strength was such that Rome had no hope of subduing them by force of arms.
            They were therefore separated from the rest of the Latins, and the old
            conditions of their alliance with Rome were in the main restored. They
            remained independent states in the full enjoyment of their own laws and
            separate existence. Their sovereignty was limited only in one point, and this
            limitation might be regarded as an advantage, and as a guarantee of their
            security. A defensive and offensive alliance obliged them to let their
            contingents join the Roman army in case of war. In other respects,
            they enjoyed such an amount of free action as small states can hope
            to possess when allied to a larger. This state of things lasted for many
            generations, until the time when the Tiburtines and Praenestines had ceased to feel otherwise than as
            Romans.
            
          
          The Latin and Volscian districts which the fortune of
            war had made subject to the Romans received less favourable conditions. They
            were admitted into a more intimate connexion, which made them Roman citizens of
            Treatment the second class, without the political franchise and yet
            districts, subject to the ordinary duties of Roman citizens.
            They received neither the right of voting in the
            legislative assemblies of the Roman people, nor that of being
            elected to any place of honour; they formed therefore no part of the
            real Roman state, and were included in no Roman tribe. On the other hand,
            they enjoyed the private right of Roman citizens, the privilege of
            concluding a marriage with Romans, with all its legal consequences, and
            moreover the right to buy and sell in Rome according to the
            strict Roman forms. The most important part of this latter right was
            that of being able to hold landed property, and without this right, which
            naturally, as well as the right of marriage, was mutual, and enjoyed by
            Romans in Latin towns as by Latins in Rome, it would not have been
            so easy as indeed it was to romanise the whole
            of Latium and to prepare it for reception into full Roman
            citizenship, which happened in course of time. It is therefore
            clear that the concession of the Roman rights of marriage
            and commerce to the subject Latins, which made them nominally Romans, was
            not so much a concession granted to them as it was a privilege for the old
            Roman citizens, and enabled them to settle in Latium, and to reap the
            advantages which trade, commerce, and agriculture offered. This was all
            the easier as the Roman jurisdiction was introduced as a further condition
            of peace into the subject towns. A deputy of the Roman praetor, under the name
            of prefect (prafectus juri dicundo), was annually sent into the
            separate towns, and administered the jurisdiction in all civil cases in
            which the Roman marriage and . commercial law had to be applied. It is
            probable that in other respects nothing was altered in the customary laws.
            
          
          On the whole, Rome was not beset by the sin of modern
            bureaucratic states—the sin of governing too much, of meddling with
            affairs which could safely be left to local self-government without
            endangering her supremacy. A great variety of local usages and names
            survived the absorption of the different towns into the Roman
            republic, and this wise policy contributed materially to
            facilitate the extension of Roman dominion and to attach the subject
            towns to Roman rule. Only in those places which by special acts of
            faithlessness or treason had drawn upon themselves the vengeance of Rome
            every kind of local independence was abolished.
            
          
          It was now necessary to fix the duties which the Latin
            towns subject to Rome would have to perform. In the place of the old
            alliance, which was based on the principle of equality and voluntary consent
            of the separate members to all common burdens, the Latin towns had now to
            submit to complete dependence on Rome. Their contributions in money
            and in soldiers were neither determined by their consent, as formerly, nor
            fixed once for all; but they were imposed on them by Rome, according to
            the pleasure of the Romans, and according to the wants of the
            time, without their having any influence on the decision. This duty
            was the distinguishing mark of the subject towns, and from it arose the
            name ‘municipal,’ i.e. bound to services. The Roman censors made the
            assessment of the municipalities, according to which the taxes were raised, and
            Roman officers took charge of the levying of the men for the military service.
            In order to prevent in future the possibility of a revolt, every kind of
            political union between the Latin towns was dissolved. They were
            not allowed to combine one with another for any common purpose. The
            only place where Latins from different localities could meet for common action
            was henceforth Rome. In Rome they all enjoyed the rights of
            settling, of buying and selling, of marrying according to the strict
            Roman law; but all similar intercourse between one Latin town and another
            was cut off. They were destined to repel each other and to be attracted to
            the common centre.
            
          
          Thus, isolated, politically powerless, socially
            dependent on Rome, the old towns of the Latins, once so proud and so free,
            became gradually provincial towns of the Roman territory. There was from Rome a
            continual influx of Roman citizens. The old Latium disappeared, and a
            new Latium took its place, which, by means of Latin colonies, carried
            the Roman institutions, in the course of two centuries, over the whole
            peninsula.
            
          
          As we have already had occasion to remark, wars and
            treaties of peace produced in antiquity not only changes in the political
            conditions of the belligerents, but confiscations of land which were of much
            more importance than the loss and gain of purely political advantages.
            With the overthrow of the Latins, extensive tracts of state land were, as
            we might expect, appropriated by the Romans. Even Tibur and Praeneste are
            said to have been mulcted in this way, although these two towns were
            treated most leniently. With those towns which were changed into
            Roman municipalities this must have been the case in a much higher
            degree. It was not necessary always to send a Roman colony into such
            towns. The occupation of state land by Roman citizens took place in many cases
            where  it was not necessary to establish colonies, which, at the period
              we are speaking of, had primarily the object of securing an exposed
                frontier, and not that of providing for poor citizens. As in the large territory of Veii
                  only two colonies, Sutrium and Nepete, were established, while all the remaining land
                  was reserved for the use of the Roman citizens, so it is probable that but
                  few places in Latium were now colonized. Most of the districts lay so near
                  to Rome that they appeared to need no particular protection through
                  colonies. But that considerable portions of land were made Roman state
                  land cannot be doubted. Where no further severity was necessary, the
                  confiscation of the state lands was considered a sufficient punishment,
                  hut where, as in Velitrae, the nobility had
                  shown themselves especially hostile, banishment was added to confiscation.
                  
                
          Besides the towns with which the old alliance was
            renewed and those which became municipia, there was a third class of Latin
            towns which were completely absorbed into the Roman state, two new Roman
            tribes being formed out of their territory. These towns seem to have
            obtained the most favourable conditions, inasmuch as they were fully incorporated.
            But a suspicion remains that perhaps they were really treated most
            severely, for it is not unlikely that the old proprietors were dispossessed and
            Roman citizens settled on their lands. What became of the
            former possessors is uncertain. Perhaps they entered the class of the
            erarii, or, in other words, became subjects without public rights; perhaps
            they were simply expelled or sold as slaves. 
            
          
          
             
          
          CHAP. VII.
                
          
          THE LAWS OF PUBLILIUS PHILO, 339 B.C.
                
          
          
             
          
          Before the new organisation of Latium was completed, a
            disturbance took place in Rome, which showed that the old opposition between
            patricians and plebeians  had not yet
            disappeared. We have already seen that the Licinian law had failed to produce
            perfect peace and concord. The the mutiny of the legions in the year 342
            had hardly led plebeians, to an agreement when the impending revolution in
            Latium opened a prospect of change in all the social relations of the
            people. It seems that the nobility were still as anxious as ever to secure
            for themselves the greatest advantages. In the senate this party possessed the
            majority; and as the senate, acting as an executive council, was not
            only intrusted with carrying out the resolutions of the people as to the
            organisation of the newly-acquired districts, but could by their consent
            or refusal (i.e. by giving or withholding the patrum auctoritas) further or retard these
            resolutions, the people had practically no voice as to what should be done
            with the new acquisitions, whether a colony should be sent out, whether a
            simple assignment of land should take place, or whether
            occupation should be permitted. Both consuls of the year 339 had
            quarrelled with the senate. The origin of the dispute was a measure of the
            senate assigning to Roman citizens in the Latin and Falernian territory the wretched pittance of from two to three jugera of land. The plebeian consul Publilius Philo, having been named dictator by his
            patrician colleague, Aemilius, probably in direct
            opposition to the senate, proposed a series of laws which had for
            their object to make the legislative prerogative of the
            people independent of the formal consent of the senate.
            
          
          The first of the Publilian laws enacted that
            plebiscites (that is, the decisions of the plebeian assembly of tribes), should
            be binding on all citizens. This law looks like re-enactment of the law which
            was proposed by the consuls Valerius and
            Horatius. Whether it really was so, or whether it contained special
            provisions unknown to our informants, it is impossible to decide.
            
          
          The second law is plainer. It declares that the
            resolutions of the centuries should, not depend on the consent of the senate.
            By this law the legitimate influence of the senate in legislation was not
            abolished. It continued to the end of the republic, and was rather
            increased than lessened, as with the growth of the state the counsel of
            a body of experienced statesmen naturally became more important. But it
            was possible that the opposition of the senate to a resolution of the
            people might bring about a deadlock. In such cases it was better for the
            law to decide which of the two should yield, than to leave
            the decision to chance or force, and it was quite in accordance with
            the constitutional theory of the ancient republics that the sovereignty should
            be vested in the people, and that the decision of the people should be the
            supreme law. When the people had succeeded in electing a popular consul,
            it was desirable that they should have power to enable him to carry those
            measures which for the well-being of the state would suffer no delay. It
            cannot be denied that great danger lay in this abolition of the veto of
            the senate. A reckless demagogue was now without any restraint but the
            good sense of the people, and it is a striking proof of the political
            wisdom of the Roman people that the Publilian law was very
            rarely used.
            
          
          A third law of Publilius ordained that in future one
            of the two censors must be a plebeian. If we consider that the formation
            of new tribes was in prospect, and actually took place some years later,
            331 BC, when Q. Publilius Philo himself was the first plebeian censor, we
            must infer that this law also had reference to the regulation of property
            caused by the new assignments of land.
            
          
          The plebeians were probably also admitted to the praetorship
            by the Publilian law, for in the year 337 BC. Q. Publilius Philo himself
            first filled the office, which from this time forward was held alternately
            every year by patricians and plebeians. As the Roman praetor nominated the
            prefects, who exercised jurisdiction in the municipia, it is evident that
            the interest of the plebeians in this office was of particular importance
            just at this period.
            
          
          
             
          
          CHAPTER VIII.
                
          
          THE EXTENSION OF THE ROMAN DOMINION TOWARDS CAMPANIA,
            
          
          337-326 B.C.
                
          
          
             
          
          The new settlement of the relations between Rome and
            Latium occupied some years. The allies of the Latins— the Volscians, the
            Ausonian tribes on the Liris, between Latium and Campania, and the Capuans—were treated as the Latins had been. But
            serious efforts were necessary before the Romans could succeed in gaining
            a firm footing in those parts. Cales was
            conquered in a war with the Sidicinians, and in
            this important place, between the Liris and the Volturnus,
            a colony was established of 2,500 men, which was intended to secure the
            road to Campania. The Romans had thus pushed their conquests into
            the immediate neighbourhood of the Samnites, with whom it was clear
            that a conflict could not long be postponed.
            
          
          In the very next year two Volscian towns, Fabrateria and Luca, placed themselves under the protection
            of the Romans, to be safe from the Samnites, and the Samnites, at the
            instance of the Romans, refrained from hostilities against these new
            friends of their allies. They also looked on quietly while the Romans (330
            BC) chastised, with the greatest severity, the two towns of Fundi and Privernum, which had tried to shake off the yoke of
            the limited Roman franchise imposed upon them. The leader of
            this revolt, a noble citizen of Fundi, of the name of Vitruvius Vaccus, atoned for his undertaking by death at the
            hands of the executioner. The town of Privernum was deprived of its walls, the senators were banished to Etruria,
            their land divided among Roman citizens, and the town ceased to be a
            self-governing community. At length (in 328 BC) the Romans established a
            colony in the town of Fregellae, a most important locality on the river
            Liris, on one of the two roads leading to Campania. Thus Rome pushed
            to the very utmost the advantages of her victory over the Latins. The
            Roman territory was greatly enlarged, the former allies made entirely
            subservient to the interests of the state, and hound to Rome with chains
            of iron. The subject territory, in different degrees of
            dependence, stretched from Tibur and Praeneste as far as Campania; new
            fortifications secured the frontiers. Rome had more than doubled her size.
            Her internal organisation had become stronger, and she was ready to break
            through the narrow hounds which had thus far confined the ambition of
            her citizens.
            
          
          The Samnites did not look on with indifference at this
            extension of the Roman power, which could advance southwards only at their
            expense. Their interest imperatively demanded that they should oppose its
            further growth, and especially that they should protect their nearest
            neighbours and kinsmen, the Volscians, Aruneans, and
            Campanians, against the Romans. Yet they remained quiet. This peaceful
            disposition could not be caused by shortsightedness.
            The Samnites saw the danger which threatened them from the north, but their
            strength was at this time required for a new enemy who came from the south
            and threw the whole of lower Italy into a state of excitement. Alexander,
            the prince of the Molossians, had landed in Italy, with a Greek army, and
            appeared to be going to found a great Greek empire on its shores, as
            his nephew, the great Alexander, did in the East.
            
          
          Up to this period no direct political intercourse had
            taken place between Rome and Greece. All the stories of former relations
            of the Romans to the Greeks are open to doubt and suspicion. Now, however, the
            Romans had come into contact with the Greeks in Campania, and
            the appearance of Alexander in Italy was the first event by which the
            Greeks influenced Roman affairs. This seems, therefore, a proper place to
            cast a glance over that part of the peninsula where Greek colonies had
            been planted, and which becomes visible more and more as the
            horizon of Roman history widens.
            
          
          
             
          
          CHAPTER IX.
                
          
          THE GREEK SETTLEMENTS IN ITALY.
                
          
          
             
          
          Italy and Sicily were for the poet of the Odyssey still
            the fabulous land of one-eyed giants and savages, of sea-nymphs and
            enchantresses, of unapproachable rocks and whirlpools. In those parts near
            the setting sun was the entrance to the realm of shadows, where the world
            of the living was in immediate contiguity with the dwelling-place of
            departed spirits. But by degrees the mist which had hidden the west from
            the. eyes of the Greeks began to pass away. The time came when Hellenic
            mariners, seeking plunder and profit, explored the seas from east to west,
            in increasing rivalry with the first and boldest navigators
            of antiquity, the Phoenicians. The news reached Greece of a large and
            beautiful country on the other side of the Ionian sea, rich in luxuriant
            pastures and far-spreading plains, such as the poor mother country did not
            -contain among her bare mountain chains. Numbers of bold adventurers
            now poured across the sea from every part of Greece to found new
            homes in the beautiful country of the west. The coast of sunny Sicily was
            soon covered on the east and west with Greek colonies; in Italy they
            stretched from the beautiful Gulf of Campania to the innermost parts of
            that of Tarentum. The highly gifted Hellenic races quickly reached a
            high degree of prosperity in their new settlements, and it seemed as if a new
            and a larger Greece was about to flourish on Italian soil. Sybaris,
            Croton, Rhegium, Metapontum, Tarentum, and a number of other
            settlements in the southern parts of Italy vied with the Sicilian towns of
            Syracuse, Gela, Agrigentum, Leontini, Naxos, Messina and others in the arts of
            peace and war, and in the seventh and sixth centuries B.C. far outstripped the
            mother county in wealth, population, and magnificence. They subdued the
            country from the coast inwards, and ruled over the native, races. The
            extraordinary prosperity which the Greek towns in Italy and Sicily had
            reached is evident even now. from the splendid ruins of their edifices.
            We can form a faint conception of what must have been the grandeur of
            Agrigentum, Syracuse, Croton, Sybaris, and Tarentum from the imposing
            ruins which fill the traveller with awe, admiration, and mournful regret,
            on the site of Posidonia or Paestum, one of the most insignificant of
            all the Greek cities.
            
          
          With all their energy and activity, the Greeks were
            wanting in the ability to work out a stable form of government or a grand
            comprehensive national polity. They knew of no division or limitation in
            the exercise of sovereign power, no subjection of the individual will to
            law, no dominion over others but that of force. They pushed the
            rights of the individual to the extreme, and they never acknowledged in
            the just claims of others a barrier to their own desires. Sparta was
            considered in Greece, by the wisest and best men, as the most perfect
            realisation of an ideal state. And yet the law in Sparta sanctioned the
            continuance of inhuman violence. The Spartan institutions were
              a permanent outrage on the noblest instincts of humanity; they secured
                order at the cost of justice, culture, and the more refined and dignified
                enjoyments of life. Where the same iron despotism could not be inforced as in Sparta, public life was one constant
                struggle between the aristocratic and democratic parties, both of which
                with equal recklessness, with equal contempt of divine and human
                laws, expected peace, salvation, and prosperity for themselves only from
                the complete subjection or annihilation of their antagonists. The same feelings
                which animated the civil contests in each separate community inspired the
                international policy of the Greek states. Every conquest of land led to
                the enslavement of the conquered, not to the real extension of the mother town
                by the admission of new citizens. Thus Sparta incapacitated herself
                to unite the Greek races under her strong shield, for she degraded the
                conquered into Helots. Athens failed in her attempt to form a strong
                confederation, for she was only intent on making profit from her
                allies. Hence arose the desperate courage with which every Greek town
                defended itself, and that wonderful energy of the separate states, which
                rendered the formation of larger states impossible.
                
              
          With the virtues of their race, the Italian Greeks had
            also brought their vices to their new homes. Had they joined for common
            action either in Sicily or Italy—nay, had they only refrained from
            mutually lacerating one another—they might have hellenised the whole country, and have found in Italy the broad basis for a Greek
            empire. Perhaps Greek civilisation might have prevailed over Italian
            barbarism, and, instead of a Roman, a Greek empire have extended itself
            along all the coasts of the Mediterranean. But that was not to be; the
            prosperity to which the Greek settlers had attained in Italy in two
            centuries, suffered, after many partial interruptions, the first
            heavy blow by the war which, about 500 B.C., broke out between the
            two neighbouring towns of Sybaris and Croton, and ended in the total
            destruction of Sybaris. This war was succeeded by a bloody revolution in
            the victorious city of Croton, by which the aristocratic party, and with
            it the political sect of the Pythagoreans, were expelled.
            Thus weakened, Croton suffered, in a war with the neighbouring Greeks
            of Locri and Rhegium, a defeat at the river Sagra, from which it never again fully recovered.
            Through such struggles, the Greek nationality in Italy declined.
            The aboriginal population of the country, the Messapians and the Sabellian tribes, the Lucanians and the Bruttians, which
            were spread over the south of Italy, were encouraged to a more vigorous
            resistance against the Greek settlers. The Greeks in Sicily frequently made
            common cause with them against their own countrymen. Thus in the wars of
            rapine and plunder with which the elder Dionysius visited the Italian
            coast, Rhegium was destroyed and the inhabitants were sold as slaves.
            
          
          In these troubles the Italian Greeks turned for help
            to the mother country, but without renouncing even now the jealousy, the
            ambition, and the hostilities amongst themselves which were destined here, as everywhere,
            to be so fatal to their freedom. Of all the Greek settlements
            on Italian ground Tarentum was perhaps the most favourably situated.
            By an active industry and an extensive trade it had raised itself to a
            condition of great wealth, and it enjoyed a comparative security from
            hostile attacks. But Tarentum also felt the effect of the calamities which
            visited all the Greek towns, and she found it more and more difficult
            to defend her independence from the Italian nations. In vain the
            Tarentines called the Spartan king Archidamus to their assistance. At the
            time when Rome came forth victorious from the war with the
            Latins, Archidamus fell in a battle against the Lucanians.
            The Tarentines now applied to Alexander, the prince of the Molossians
            in Epirus, brother of Olympias and uncle of Alexander the Great. The time
            had arrived when the genuine Hellenes began to languish, and when the
            rude vigorous half-castes in the north of Greece, the Macedonians and
            the Epirots, seemed to be called upon to
            propagate the civilisation of Greece over the world. While Philip of
            Macedon and his great son gathered together in their hands the forces of
            Greece, and were about to direct them towards the East, the spirited
            princes of Epirus conceived a plan equally bold and equally worthy of
            success in endeavouring to unite the Italian and Sicilian Greek towns into
            a powerful state, and to found a Greek empire of the West. But here, on
            Italian ground, they met with races who, unlike the enervated Asiatics, did not submit their neck to the yoke, but
            maintained their freedom with stubborn resistance, and, advancing from the
            defence to the attack, expelled the foreign invaders, and reduced all
            the Greek settlements in Italy and Sicily to submission.
            
          
          Alexander landed in Tarentum with an Epirotic army, organised and equipped according to
            Macedonian fashion, gig object was clearly nothing short of the conquest
            of Italy. He overran the peninsula, beat the Samnites, Lucanians, Bruttians, and Messapians in many
            battles, took their fortified places, established himself in Greek
            towns, and was on the point of accomplishing his hold project when he
            fell by the hand of a traitor. The whole expedition was frustrated by his
            death  his army dispersed;
            his conquests were lost; the Greek towns had not the courage or the
            skill to maintain their superiority over the Italian barbarians; in short,
            the old state of things returned, and Homans and Samnites stood alone
            opposed to one another to fight out the battle for the dominion in Italy.
            
          
          Alexander, in one of his marches through southern
            Italy, had come into the neighbourhood of Campania, and had concluded a treaty
            of amity with the Romans. This treaty was of course directed against the
            Samnites, whose services the Romans thought that they should no longer need
            after their complete conquest of the Latins, and who would be in
            their way if they wished to extend their dominion further south. The Romans
            did not hesitate to make friends of the enemies of the Samnites. Their politics
            were above considerations of attachment and gratitude to those to whom they
            owed their deliverance from the danger of the Latin war. Circumstances had
            changed. Rome had become strong; the Samnites caused difficulties. It was
            necessary to make use of this opportunity, and, by help of the Greek
            prince, to get rid of the rivalry of the Samnites. The death of Alexander
            freed the Sabellian peoples of Italy from the danger of falling under
            Greek dominion. The Lucanians and Bruttians could now continue their old feuds with the Greek towns on the coast, and
            the Samnites, had time to collect all their force against Rome. There
            were not wanting causes or pretexts for a new war.
            
          
          
             
          
          CHAPTER X.
                
          
          THE SECOND SAMNITE WAR,
            
          
          326-304 B.C.
                
          
          Cumae was the oldest Greek town on Italian soil. In
            the time of her prosperity, before she fell into the hands of the conquering
            Samnites, she had established settlements on the neighbouring gulf named after
            her, and had infused into a great many places on the Campanian plain a touch of
            Hellenic blood. Among the towns founded by Cumae were two cities named
            Palaeopolis and Neapolis, the old town and the new town, which appear to have
            been situated close to one another and to have formed one single political community.
            Palaeopolis was destined to become the apple of discord between the Romans and
            the Samnites. Having reduced Cumae after the end of the war with the Latins,
            the Romans were anxious to make further acquisitions in Campania, and
            accordingly were soon involved in disputes with the inhabitants of Palaeopolis.
            The occasion for these was alleged to be the hostility of the Palaeopolitans against Roman citizens who had settled in
            their vicinity. It is in the highest degree improbable that the small town of
            Palaeopolis should provoke the hostility of the Romans by such foolish conduct.
            There were, however, in Palaeopolis, as everywhere, an aristocratic and a
            democratic party, and we are told that the one party sought assistance from the
            Samnites, the other from the Romans. The Romans were everywhere the friends of
            the aristocracy. It was consequently the popular party in Palaeopolis which
            applied for aid to the Samnites, and caused a strong Samnite garrison to
            be sent to Palaeopolis. When this Samnite force had marched into
            Palaeopolis the war was in fact begun, and it was a war, not between Palaeopolis
            and Rome, but between the two great rival nations, the Romans and the
            Samnites. Thus the war between Rome and Samnium began, just as
            the war between Rome and Carthage at a later period became quite
            unavoidable, when the town of Messina, which both people were striving to
            take, was occupied by a Carthaginian garrison. In truth it was no longer
            possible after the Latin war for the Romans and the Samnites to
            keep up friendly relations. If the Samnites did not wish to surrender
            the whole of Campania to the Romans, it became indispensably necessary to
            make a stand, since they were no longer threatened by King Alexander. They
            were determined to do this, and seized the opportunity which offered
            itself in Palaeopolis.
            
          
          The situation was very serious for Rome. They had to
            accept the challenge which had been offered them, through the occupation
            of Palaeopolis, or they must give up Campania, and perhaps much more. Without
            the least hesitation, they resolved on war, elected to the consulship one
            of their best men, Q. Publilius Philo, who, as a statesman and as a soldier,
            enjoyed the confidence of all, and conferred on him, without the customary
            decision by lot, the command of the war in Campania. Publilius had (339 BC)
            as dictator carried the important laws which bore his name, and which had
            infused more activity and energy into the state. He was moreover the first
            plebeian who filled successively the offices of praetor and censor. He was
            now able to effect a further reform. In the previous wars which had
            been carried on in the neighbourhood of Rome, and which had seldom lasted
            longer than a few summer months, it had been customary in every new
            campaign to place at the head of the army the newly elected magistrates,
            consuls or military tribunes. How, as the war had assumed
            larger dimensions and was more complicated, it seemed necessary to
            modify the old practice, and to confide the execution of one uniform plan
            to one commander alone. Therefore the command of Q. Publilius Philo was
            prolonged after the expiration of his year of office, and he was the first
            Roman who commanded an army as proconsul.
            
          
          With a just appreciation of the greatness of the
            impending war, the Roman people decided to strengthen themselves by foreign
            alliances. They possessed the instinctive tact which is displayed even by rude
            and ignorant nations in their first unsteady steps on the tortuous path of
            diplomacy. They looked for allies among the neighbours of their enemies,
            especially those who dwelt in their enemies’ rear. When they had to
            encounter the Aequians and Volscians, they had made friends with the Hernicans; afterwards
            they had availed themselves of the assistance of the Samnites to crush the
            Latins; then they made a treaty with Alexander, the Molossian king, who
            was attacking Samnium from the south; now they acted on the same
            principle by drawing the Apulians and Lucanians into their alliance. Not
            much dependence, it is true, could be placed on the Lucanians. Widely
            spread over the southern part of the peninsula from Samnium to the
            Tarentine Gulf, the land of the Bruttians, and
            the Tyrrhenian Sea, in constant war with those Greeks who had settled on
            the coast, they led the unsteady life of robbers and shepherds, ready always,
            for pay and booty, to serve anyone who presented flattering prospects to
            them, the real forerunners and models of the Italian condottieri and
            brigands. Regular political organisation was unknown to them; they lived in
            continual wars among themselves and with their neighbours, without a
            well-defined national union. As hereditary enemies of the
            Greeks, they had at first fought against Alexander of Epirus;
            then they fell out among themselves, and one party
            supported Alexander and fought under his banner; soon these went over
            to the other side, and Alexander was murdered by a traitor from their
            ranks. They seemed now to be again at enmity with the Samnites, and they
            willingly accepted the friendship offered them by Rome. This alliance was
            not destined to last very long; for, according to Livy’s report, the
            Lucanians soon deserted the Romans and made common cause with the Samnites.
            Still, a nation so divided and so unsteady as the Lucanians presented a
            favourable field to Roman diplomacy for sowing discord, and it
            could not have been difficult for Rome to make the Lucanian alliance
            utterly useless to the Samnites. The Apulians lent themselves more readily
            to a Roman alliance than the Lucanians. Apulia, extending on the east of
            the Samnite mountain lands towards the Adriatic Sea, was indispensable to
            the Samnites as a pasture-ground for their numerous herds in winter, when
            the snow lay on the hills of Samnium. This circumstance was the cause of
            constant disputes between the Samnites and the Apulians, and it was
            therefore not difficult for the Romans to gain friends in Apulia. Even the
            kindred Sabellian races north of Samnium, the Marsians, Pelignians,
            Marrucinians, and Vestinians, appeared in the beginning of the war
            either neutral or friendly to the Romans, a circumstance of the greatest
            importance, as by this means the road to Apulia was open to the legions. The
            friendship of the Romans with these Sabellian tribes is probably of older
            date, for in the Latin war we have seen that a Roman army marched
            through their land on their roundabout way to Campania in order to attack the
            Latins in the rear. The Vestinians alone made an attempt to break the
            alliance with Rome, but they were soon compelled to desist, and they
            kept quiet during the rest of the war. Samnium was thus isolated and
            surrounded by Borne and her allies. The Roman senate had neglected nothing
            which forethought and prudence demanded to secure success. All that
            remained to be done was to secure the divine protection, and the great struggle
            could with confidence be entered upon.
            
          
          As the private life of the Romans was regulated with
            reference to the divine will and protection, so in political life more
            especially no important resolution was made, no great decision ventured
            upon, without the special consent of the gods. But the usual auspicia were not considered sufficient in cases of uncommon
            emergency. To avert extraordinary dangers extraordinary means were
            necessary for obtaining the favour of the gods, and it was on
            such occasions that the books of fate were consulted. Now it was
            determined, probably after consulting the so-called Sibylline books, to
            celebrate a ‘lectisternium.’ This old Italian ceremony,
            which was calculated to make a deep impression on the people, consisted in a
            solemn feast given to the gods themselves, who were supposed to come
            personally as invited guests among the people, as a proof of their
            intention to show themselves friendly and gracious. The decorated images of
            certain gods were laid upon rich cushions, and close by were placed tables
            with food. The people crowded the streets, and thronged the temples of the
            gods who had condescended to be present among their worshippers. It was a
            general day of prayer, which inspired serious thoughts, and strengthened
            human determination with the hope of heavenly approval. The gods were
            propitiated, the war could begin.
            
          
          The Samnites were now called upon in due form through
            the fetiales to withdraw their garrison from Palaeopolis,
            a request which could have no other object than to call forth a
            declaration of war. The Samnites declined to comply, and on their part
            complained of the occupation and colonisation by Rome of the town of Fregellae
            on the Liris, which the Samnites some years before had conquered and
            destroyed, and which therefore by right belonged to them, and not to the
            Romans. Where war has been previously determined upon, the discussion of mutual grievances
              and of points of law is useless. But it was a contemptible piece of
                hypocrisy and an act of bare-faced impiety on the part of the Romans to
                invoke the gods to witness that it was the Samnites who wronged the Roman
                people by refusing redress for just complaints. How hardened must
                have been the consciences, or how indifferent the minds to the
                meaning of words and set forms of prayer, if the fetialis could pronounce without trembling the formula by which he declared war,
                and called down the blessing of the gods upon that of the two hostile
                nations which had justice on its side!
                
              
          An authentic account of the second Samnite war, if we
            possessed it, would belong to the most instructive and attractive chapters in
            the whole range of history. The question at issue was not now one of paltry
            squabbles about cattle being driven away, or a few villages burnt, as in
            the tedious wars of the Aquinas and Volscians. The two most powerful
            nations of the peninsula struggled with each other for no less a prize
            than the dominion over the whole of Italy. It was a war full of unexpected
            changes, of triumphs and defeats, a war which called forth
            the highest qualities of the statesman, the citizen, and the soldier.
            The Roman republic had passed through numberless internal struggles and
            external dangers, and stood in youthful strength and conscious courage. It
            was now to be seen how the political institutions would answer which
            had been made, not by one single legislator, but by a whole people working
            with stubborn perseverance during several generations. On the other side
            stood a vigorous, unbroken people of herdsmen and peasants, proud in
            their independence and capable of the greatest exertions and sacrifices—a
            people which calls for our warm sympathy, not only on account of its
            magnanimity, but also on account of its misfortunes. We should
            like to look into the internal connexion of events, in order to
            follow the steps which led gradually to the exhaustion and overthrow of
            the mighty Samnites. But we recognise in the stories which have been
            preserved to us only sketchy, mutilated fragments of a tradition which in
            its very origin was marred by Roman partiality, by patriotic mendacity
            and family pride. It is difficult enough to recognise the leading events
            in their grand outlines, and to clear them from the false colouring of the
            partial annalists; but we must give up the hope of tracing all the
            connecting links which bound one to another. We shall therefore dwell
            only on the few events which stand out with clearness and certainty from the
            confused mass of the received narrative, and indicate in a general manner
            the course and character of the war.
            
          
          The Romans, it seems, began the war with great energy
            in Campania as also in Samnium. The siege of Palaeopolis was continued,
            and, as already related, the command was prolonged to the consul Q.
            Publilius Philo. The town soon fell into the hands of the Romans, not by
            conquest but by treason. The leaders of the Roman party
            in Palaeopolis took the Samnite garrison one night into the harbour,
            under the pretence of manning the ships and undertaking a predatory excursion
            to the Latin coast. At the same time they let the Romans into the town,
            closed the gates of the harbour, and compelled the Samnites, who had
            already deposited their arms on board, to a hasty flight.
            
          
          In the meantime the two consuls led their armies to
            Samnium, to attack the Samnites in their own land and to prevent their
            raising the siege of Palaeopolis. It is reported that three Samnite towns—Allifae, Callifae, and Rufrium— fell into the hands of the Romans, and that
            the length and breadth of the country was laid waste by the
            consuls. At the same time the Romans must have penetrated, probably
            with one of the consular armies, through the country of the Marsians
            towards the eastern scene of war in Apulia; for the following year, 325 BC,
            marks the subjugation of the Vestinians, with whom the Romans could have
            come in contact only if they marched through their land to Apulia. The war
            with the Samnites, therefore, was commenced in three different places by
            one proconsular and two consular armies of two legions each, and the first
            success was on the side of the Romans, who anticipated the Samnites in the
            attack.
            
          
          The Roman annalists generally leave the connexion of military events quite out of sight, and like
            to occupy themselves with stories in which the prominent men of
            noble families played a great part. Thus a dispute between
            the dictator L. Papirius Cursor and his master of the horse, Q. Fabius Rullianus, supplies Livy with an opportunity
            for showing his great talent for rhetorical declamation and effective
            narrative. Several chapters are filled with this interesting affair, but they
            contribute nothing towards the real history of the war. L. Papirius Cursor was
            one of those favourite heroes of the old school who looked upon
            military discipline as the first condition of national prosperity.
            He was now dictator, and being obliged to leave the army and go to
            Rome to take the auspices anew, he left strict injunctions with his master
            of the horse, Q. Fabius Rufianus, to avoid all collision
            with the enemy during his absence. Fabius did not attend to this order. He
            made use of an opportunity, and won a great victory over the Samnites.
            For this violation of military obedience the stem Papirius threatened
            that he should suffer death. Fabius escaped from the camp and sought
            protection with the Roman senate. But the dictator followed close after
            him, refusing to be turned from his resolution by any entreaties or
            threats, until Fabius, renouncing any protection from the law,
            gave himself up to the magnanimity and mercy of the dictator. After
            the sanctity of military discipline had been solemnly acknowledged by this
            submission, Papirius granted Fabius his life, but removed him from his
            office, and appointed in his place L. Papirius Crassus as master of the
            horse.
            
          
          The annalists of the Papirians and the Fabians, who mentioned these family disputes, were not at a loss to
            make a suitable framework of military events for their narrative. The
            Fabians told long stories of a great victory gained by Q. Fabius over the
            Samnites in the absence of the dictator—a victory which excited his envy and
            jealousy. Twenty thousand enemies were slain. That, however, was not
            yet sufficient. Some writers related two victories of Fabius, equally grand
            and brilliant. But others, as Livy honestly adds, mentioned nothing of all
            this. The oldest annalist of the Romans, who worked up family
            memorials into a history of Rome, was Fabius Pictor. To him we may
            perhaps attribute a great part of the many stories in which the Fabians appear,
            and among them the boastful narrative of the heroic deeds of Q. Fabius Maximus
            in the second Samnite war. But the Papirians would not be outdone by the Fabians. The dictator therefore, on his
            return to the army, likewise defeats the Samnites, lays waste their
            territory, even compels them to ask for peace, and graciously grants them
            one year’s truce.
            
          
          If at this time a truce was really concluded with the
            Samnites, the Romans had most probably as good reason for desiring it as their
            enemies, even if it be true that hitherto the fortune of war was on their
            side. The edifice of the Roman supremacy over Latium was still too
            new to be able to weather every storm. Soon after the breaking out of the
            Samnite wars, ominous signs of danger appeared in the immediate
            neighbourhood of Rome. Tusculum, which had always been so devoted, began
            to waver in her fidelity. Her discontent broke out into
            open rebellion, and this revolt spread to Privernum and Velitrae, two Latin towns whose obstinate resistance
            against the sovereignty of Rome had often alarmed the Romans and been
            quelled with difficulty. If this spirit of rebellion had extended further,
            the Roman power would have been endangered to its very foundations, and
            the war with the Samnites could not have been continued.
            
          
          As to the cause of the rebellion in Latium, our
            authorities are, as usual, silent. We may reasonably suspect that the severity
            of the Romans, and the numerous confiscations after the end of the war
            with the Latins, were the cause of the discontent which showed
            itself now, and even at a later time, in various ways. The Tusculans, Veliternians, and Privernatians had become subjects of Rome. They now endeavoured either to become
            Roman citizens or to regain their independence, and they succeeded in
            carrying their point. It is quite possible that there was a party in these
            towns which was ready to call on the Samnites for protection. Without
            the prospect of Samnite help Tusculum and the other Latin towns would
            not have dared to defy Rome. But with the help of the Samnites, their hostility
            would be very serious, and so the extraordinary circumstance is explained,
            that the town of Home was alarmed one night, and the citizens prepare
            to defend themselves against an attack. Yet the danger passed away; it is
            not stated how. We learn only accidentally that L. Fulvius Curvus, who in this year filled the highest
            magistracy in Tusculum, was in the following year consul in Rome, and,
            more than this, that five years later—that is, at the next census—two new
            Roman tribes were established. Nothing is said of a forcible
            suppression of the revolt. It follows from this that Rome, by a
            wise concession, averted the threatening storm, while she received
            into full citizenship, on favourable terms, the whole of the rebellious
            Latins. Whether Fulvius, who was raised to the
            consulship in Rome 322 BC, belonged in the year before (323), when he was
            consul in Tusculum, to the party hostile to Rome, may reasonably be
            doubted. The Romans were not naturally inclined to lavish generosity
            towards their enemies, or to overcome hatred by love. Moreover it is
            reported by Livy that the tribune M. Flavius made a proposal to the people
            to punish with death or loss of freedom those Tusculans who had
            excited the Veliternians and Privernatians to war against Rome. This equally cruel and unwise measure was indeed
            rejected almost unanimously; nevertheless it can hardly be imagined that
            the leader of the Tusculan rebellion, instead of being punished with
            death, should have obtained the Roman consulship as the price of his
            submission. It is far more likely that Fulvius was throughout well affected to Rome, and brought about the arrangement by
            which the cause of discontent among a party at Tusculum was chap. removed
            and the Tusculans were admitted to the full Roman franchise. The boastful Roman
            annalists avoid, almost on principle, making the admission that concessions
            were made to any enemy. They looked upon concessions as incompatible with
            the majesty of the republic, and thought that all opposition ought to
            be crushed by force of arms. But we know that the Romans were wise
            enough to yield, when it was necessary, and we may presume that on the
            present occasion they accepted a compromise which was highly salutary to
            all parties; that the plan of rising against Rome was entertained
            only by a portion of the Tusculans, Veliternians,
            and Privernatians, and that, after their real
            grievances were removed, the whole population of these towns ceased to
            desire separation from Rome, like the Roman plebs after
            their reconciliation with the patricians on the Sacred Hill.
            
          
          The necessity of a conciliatory policy towards their
            Latin and Campanian subjects appeared plainly in the course of tory
            policy, the war, when fortune began to favour the Samnites, and the
            arm of Rome appeared to be paralysed. Even in the war of Hannibal the
            faith of many of the subject peoples wavered; it is therefore not to be
            wondered at that, a century before, those communities which were scarcely
            brought into subjection bore the yoke with uneasy reluctance.
            
          
          In the campaign of the year 322, the fourth of the
            war, the Roman writers boasted of a series of brilliant successes.
            Unfortunately they are not agreed whether these successes are to be attributed
            to the consuls, L. Fulvius Curvus,
            the Tusculan, and Q. Fabius Rullianus, the
            late master of the horse, or to a dictator, A. Cornelius Arvina. The Samnites, it is said, humbled by repeated
            defeats and losses, sued for peace. But although they came to deliver
            up the body of their general, Brutulus Papius, who in despair had put an end to his own life, they
            were unsuccessful, because they would not unconditionally recognise the supremacy
            of Rome. This story, so gratifying to Roman pride, can hardly be considered
            sufficiently authenticated. When so many of the most important
            and striking events were imperfectly recorded, it is not likely that
            we should be informed of diplomatic transactions that led to no result.
            The events, moreover, which took place in the succeeding year show that
            the Samnites were very far indeed from being fainthearted and compelled to
            sue for peace.
            
          
          If other nations delight in remembering the days of
            national triumphs, and in celebrating the memory of victories by which they
            feel their strength was increased and their pride gratified, the greatness
            of the Roman people is shown much more by their keeping
            continually before their eyes the evil days when the god of
            battles was unfavourable to them, and by celebrating the anniversaries of
            their defeats, in a certain degree, as days of national humiliation. The
            day of the Allia and the day of Cannes stood
            before the eye of the Roman in more burning colours than the day of the
            victory of Zama. But by the side of those names there was yet a third
            in the list of evil days—a name which was more painful than any other
            to the proud Roman, because the feeling of national disgrace and
            humiliation could not be separated from it; it was the name of the Caudine Pass. At the Alia and at Cannee thousands fell in open battle; at Caudium four legions agreed to purchase
            life and freedom by the sacrifice of military honour, and the Roman
            people, when they refused to ratify the agreement, covered themselves with
            a load of infamy, from which no sophistry could free them, even in their
            own conscience.
            
          
          The two consuls of the year 321 BC, T. Veturius and Sp. Postumius,
            advanced with their united armies of about 40,000 men from Campania towards
            the country of the Samnites, with the object of relieving the allied town
            of Luceria, in Apulia, which was besieged by the enemy. This
            important and arduous campaign, in the midst of a difficult mountain
            country, the centre of the hostile power, was intrusted to two men who
            appear to have possessed no eminent military qualities. The circumstance
            that a task of such difficulty was not conferred rather on
            Papirius or Fabius shows a great defect in the Roman constitution, which
            made the appointment of a commander dependent on a contested election in
            the assembly of the people. The division also of the command between
            two generals of equal rank cannot have failed here, as in many other
            cases, to have a bad effect, especially as it seemed that the whole strength
            of the Samnites was in the hands of one single and able man, C. Pontius,
            of Telesia. The Roman army suffered a severe
            check at Caudium, the chief town of the Caudinians,
            and found itself after the battle shut up in a narrow mountain valley, the
            outlets of which were all in the possession of the victorious
            enemy. After some desperate attempts to break through, the Romans
            gave themselves up to despair. The obstructions and circumvallations all round them became larger and stronger, and
            the numbers of the victorious enemy increased. The merciless code of war which
            the Romans understood so well and applied so unreservedly,
            delivered them up, even to the last man, either to the sword or to slavery.
            The moment had arrived when the proud hopes of dominion over Italy had to turn
            into prayers for mercy and forbearance.
            
          
          But while on the one side discouragement prevailed,
            the conquerors hesitated to reap the fruit of their unexpected success. It is
            reported that C. Pontius, the commander of the Samnites, consulted his aged
            father, and that the old man advised him either to annihilate
            the whole Homan army or to discharge them honourably and unhurt,
            without any stipulation. In the first case Rome would be so crippled as to
            be unable to continue the war; in the second, the Roman people would be
            reconciled and induced to make peace. C. Pontius chose a middle
            course, alike removed from the barbarity of the one proposal,
            and from the impolitic magnanimity of the other. We would willingly
            believe that he shuddered at the thought of massacring many thousands of
            defenceless enemies, and that he hoped by proposing acceptable conditions
            to obtain a lasting peace. He desired, for the preservation of
            the Roman army, neither the subjection of Rome nor the diminution of
            her legitimate power. Rome and Samnium should acknowledge each other as
            free peoples with equal rights and privileges; only the Roman conquests
            and colonies on Samnite territory, including, of course, Fregellae and Cales, should be given up. These conditions
            were accepted by the Roman consuls, quaestors, and all the surviving
            military tribunes, with a solemn oath. Six hundred knights remained as
            hostages in the hands of the Samnites; and, with the understanding that the
            senate and the people should confirm the military convention,
            and that they would pay the price agreed upon for the discharge of the
            army, C. Pontius set the Roman army free.
            
          
          The discharge was effected in a manner expressive of
            the fact that the Romans owed their lives to the mercy of their
            conquerors. They were passed under the yoke. On two spears placed upright in
            the ground a third was fixed so as to leave a low passage. Through this the Romans
            had to walk man by man, after they had given up their weapons, their
            baggage, and even their clothes, all but one under-garment. The process
            was a general Italian custom, and was not now invented to cover the Romans with
            especial disgrace. It cannot he said that, considering the rights and
            practices of belligerents in antiquity, it was more humiliating than a
            military capitulation in modern times, which deprives the soldiers of
            their arms, and dismisses the officers on their word of honour; but
            it may be presumed that Roman pride saw in it a national humiliation
            which was all the greater, the higher the republic just then held her head
            above the other nations of Italy. But this humiliation became a brand of
            infamy by the free and deliberate action of the Roman senate
            and people—a damning spot which oceans of hostile blood could not
            wash out, and no crown of victory could hide.
            
          
          We can scarcely venture to decide whether L. Pontius
            acted wisely in discharging the Roman army before he was certain of the
            confirmation of the treaty with the with the consuls. But the fact that he
            expected a confirmation proves that Rome was under a moral obligation
            either to fulfil the conditions of the treaty or not to accept
            its advantages. It is difficult to realise the feeling of right and
            wrong of a past age, and it is a mistake to apply to it our own standard.
            But that the Romans of the fourth century before Christ recognised some
            obligation to confirm and to keep the Caudine treaty seems tolerably certain from the anxiety with which, according to
            Livy, they tried to justify themselves when political
            calculations induced them to renounce such obligations. The
            consul Sp. Postumius is said to have been the
            first to condemn the treaty on his return to Rome, and to recommend
            its rejection. With evident approval, Livy relates what pains be took
            to prove that the promise and the oath of the consuls were not binding on
            the commonwealth, but only on themselves, that they could only pledge
            their own and not the public faith, and that the Roman people were
            not bound to ratify the treaty unless they approved of it; that they,
            the consuls and vouchers of the treaty, alone were responsible if they had
            done wrong and transgressed their powers, and that they were willing to
            assume this responsibility. They and all the officers who had sworn the
            oath to the Samnites should be delivered up, because they were not
            able to fulfil what they had promised. Even two tribunes of the people who
            had been at Caudium, and had joined in the transaction, should be handed
            over to the Samnites, in spite of the sanctity of their office and
            the inviolability of their persons. That this patriotic fanaticism,
            although capable of the highest self-sacrifice, violated the divine law, Livy,
            in his patriotic enthusiasm, was unable to see. It is clear that Postumius and his brother officers could not bind the
            senate and the people by the promise they had made in Caudium; but it is
            equally clear that they were bound by their promise to do what was in
            their power to cause the treaty to be ratified. The Roman army formed a
            great and important part of the assembly of the people; it might even
            represent the Roman people. The army in the field had on a
            former occasion made laws which were binding on the whole state. The
            Samnites might, therefore, expect that each of the released Romans, from
            the consul down to the meanest plebeian, whether in the senate- or in the
            assembly of the people, would use his influence to effect the ratification
            of the treaty. Nor could this moral obligation be set aside by the voluntary
            death which the consuls were willing to suffer. For death for one’s fatherland
            is not the highest duty of a citizen, and in no way releases him from the
            eternal law of justice, which is above all considerations of political
            advantage.
            
          
          Not with a good conscience, hut according to the forms
            of law, the Roman senate and the people rejected the treaty of Caudium.
            With the sacrifice of the six hundred hostages and the delivering up of
            those who had concluded the treaty, Rome considered herself released from
            all obligation to the Samnites. The two consuls Postumius and Veturius, who immediately on their return
            had resigned their office, the quaestors and military tribunes, and
            two tribunes of the people who had pledged their word to the Samnites,
            were conducted by the Roman fetialis into the
            country of the Samnites and given up to the enemy in fetters, as an
            atonement for their breach of faith. It is revolting to read, what Livy
            with apparent approval reports, that Sp. Postumius kicked the Roman fetialis, declaring he had now
            become a Samnite, and, by injuring the fetialis had given the Romans cause for a righteous war against the Samnites. Such
            fanaticism, combined with such perfidy, was rebuked as it deserved
            by the noble Pontius. He declined to receive the prisoners, and so to
            release the Roman people from their obligation. He would accept only one
            of two things, either peace on the terms agreed upon, or the restoration
            of the whole army to the position in which it was when in the power
            of the Samnites. ‘Do you consider,’ said he, ‘that it is right for
            you to enjoy the advantage of the treaty, but that we should forego the
            peace which we had stipulated for? Wage ye war against us! The gods will
            believe indeed that Postumius is a Samnite, that
            the Roman herald was violated by a Samnite, and that you have occasion for
            a righteous war! Are you not ashamed of yourselves so to outrage religion, and,
            as old men and consulars, to seek for pretexts for your breach of faith
            which would scarcely he pardonable in children? Go, lictor; take the
            fetters off the Romans. Not one shall he detained here by us against his
            will.’
            
          
          The war therefore continued, and, as it appears, was
            for a number of years far from favourable to Rome, although the mendacious
            annalists reported brilliant successes, by which the consuls Papirius
            Cursor and Publilius Philo thoroughly avenged the disgrace of Caudium. It
            was a patriotic conviction among the Romans that a great national
            defeat must be immediately repaired. The fables of Camillus and his
            victory over the Gauls after the burning of the city are matched by no less impudent
            fictions on the present occasion. It is related that Papirius Cursor
            immediately marched to Apulia at the head of a new army, and conquered
            Luceria, which had in the meantime fallen into the hands of the Samnites.
            In Luceria he found all the Roman hostages, and the lost military
            ensigns and arms; and as he made prisoners of the whole of the Samnite
            garrison he was enabled to wipe out the disgrace of Caudium, by dismissing
            7,000 Samnites, and among them C. Pontius himself, under the yoke.
            Livy confesses that the evidence for these reports is defective. The
            statement of the capture of C. Pontius was found only in some of the
            annals. There were doubts and contradictions as to whether Papirius was
            consul or master of the horse of the dictator L. Cornelius,
            and whether the success of this campaign was to be attributed to the
            dictator Cornelius or to the consul Papirius. Livy is also unable to
            decide whether in the following year L. Papirius Cursor or L. Papirius Mugilianus was chosen as consul.
            
          
          It would be a vain attempt to clear up the confusion
            and the contradictions of the Roman reports. But it is apparent that even
            in those points where they do not exactly contradict one another, they
            deserve but little credence. Such a bold and successful campaign to Apulia as
            that which is reported of Papirius Cursor, is in itself hardly probable
            after the great losses which attended the same attempt in the previous
            year. There was a battle fought, as we have seen, at Caudium and lost by
            the Romans. A great part of the army was destroyed; six hundred
            knights, that is the horse of two legions, were in captivity; the victory
            of Caudium was a great encouragement for the Samnites, gaming friends for them
            and awakening the discontent of many Roman subjects. Luceria, the most
            important town of Apulia, had fallen into the hands of the Samnites, and
            consequently a campaign in that part was much more serious than at a
            time when that town, being in _ the possession of their allies, could
            serve as a support for the operations of the Romans. These considerations
            made it certainly not advisable for the Romans to venture on a new march
            to Apulia, however they might wish to assist their hard-pressed friends in
            that country. They were obliged to employ all their strength to secure
            their hold on Latium and Campania. It was not before the year 315 BC that
            Luceria fell again into their power, and in order to bring this
            fact into harmony with the alleged conquest of Luceria by Papirius
            Cursor in 320 B.C., the annalists assumed
            that this town in the meantime had revolted to the Samnites.
            
          
          Lastly, it is hardly probable that the Samnites
            brought the trophies and hostages of Caudium into a conquered town, in an
            enemy's country, instead of preserving them in a fortified place in their
            own land. Prom all these reflections the conclusion is forced upon us that
            the successes of the year 320 BC, the conquest of Luceria,
            the recovery of the hostages, banners, and arms, and, lastly, the capture
            and discharge under the yoke of 7,000 Samnites, and of C. Pontius, belong one
            and all to the domain of fiction.
            
          
          The defeat at Caudium showed very clearly that the
            power of Borne over the newly acquired districts, and even over Latium,
            was by no means quite secure; and when we consider that only three years
            had elapsed since Tusculum, Privernum, and Velitiae were in open rebellion, this is not to be
            wondered at. First of all, Satricum, an old
            Latin town and Roman colony, rebelled and received a Samnite garrison.
            Such a revolt of a colony is to be regarded as a successful rising of the
            original subject population against the Roman colonists, in consequence
            of which the latter were either killed or driven out. For that the Roman
            colonists themselves, as it is generally represented, should have endeavoured
            to shake off the Roman dominion is quite incredible. These Roman colonists
            were in the possession of lands which had been taken from the natives ;
            they lived and prospered at the expense of the subject population, and
            formed the ruling class. No doubt they gave sufficient cause for
            discontent and hatred to those whom they were sent to control.
            The frequent reports of revolts of colonies are therefore
            easily explained at a time when the Bowman power began to totter, and
            when the conquered population had a prospect of regaining their independence.
            But before the example of Satricum could be
            imitated, the Romans had taken possession of the town by treachery, had
            driven away the Samnite garrison, and had punished the leaders of the
            rebellion with the utmost severity. The fire in their own house was
            extinguished before it could spread. The rest of Latium remained quiet.
            The grant of Roman citizenship to the subjects in southern Latium and
            Campania, where now (318 BC) two new tribes (the Ufentina and Falerina) were formed, was not without a
            beneficial effect. Thus internally strengthened, Rome could encounter with
            more confidence the vicissitudes of war.
            
          
          The Samnites had made use of their triumph at Caudium
            to conquer the Roman colony of Fregellae on the Liris, whose foundation had
            been the principal cause of the war. Fregellae lay on one of the two
            direct lines of communication between Rome and Campania, on the so-called
            Via Latina, which led on the east side of the Albanian mountains and the
            Volscian highlands through Praeneste into the country of the Hernicans,
            the valley of the Trerus and that of the Liris;
            while the other road, afterwards so celebrated under the name of the
            Appian Way, stretched southwards along the Latin plain and kept near the
            sea. All the fortified places on both these lines were of
            the greatest importance for the Romans, because on their holding
            possession of these their secure communication with Campania depended. By
            the loss of Fregellae one of these lines of communication was now interrupted,
            and the Romans had to make the utmost efforts to keep the other open,
            unless they were prepared to abandon Campania altogether.
            
          
          While the Samnites thus endeavoured to reap the fruits
            of their victory in the direction of Latium and Campania, where, among the
            newly conquered subjects and the discontented allies of the Romans, they hoped
            to find friends, they at the same time did not lose sight of Apulia.
            The town of Luceria, whose distress had enticed the Romans into the
            pass of Caudium, fell, as we have already noticed, into their hands soon
            after the Caudine catastrophe, and paid dearly
            no doubt for her attachment to Rome. This attachment, as we have seen, was
            the natural and necessary policy of the Apulian towns, which had perhaps even more
            to suffer from the Samnites than the Sidicinians and
            Campanians on the western boundary. In order to protect their own independence,
            they had joined the enemies of the Samnites; for them the defeat of the latter
            was of even greater importance than for the Romans. Accordingly we
            see that, in spite of the battle of Caudium, and in spite of the loss of
            Luceria, many Apulian towns joined the Romans, such as Canusium,
            the Apulian Teanum, and the Frentanians.
            According to the boastful accounts of the Roman annalists,
            who could hardly relate alliances without premising victories, the various
            communities in Apulia, which now sought the Roman friendship,
            were first subdued. It is hardly necessary to remark that these
            victories are in the highest degree improbable, if we bear in mind that
            Luceria, the principal place in Apulia, was still in the possession of the
            Samnites, as also was the important town of Fregellae, on the western
            theatre of war, and that everywhere in the towns of Campania, and in
            the Ausonian country, the adherents of the Samnites plucked up
            courage, and made it more and more difficult for the Romans to maintain
            their position.
            
          
          Under such circumstances, it is surprising when we
            read in Livy that the Samnites sent ambassadors to Rome to ask the senate, on
            their knees, to renew the alliance of friendship between them; that the
            senate magnanimously granted their request, but that the people would
            only consent to a two years’ truce. Circumstances must have wonderfully changed
            in favour of the Romans since the misfortune at Caudium, if the Samnites had
            now to implore for peace. At that time C. Pontius had stipulated for the
            evacuation of the places occupied by the Romans, of Fregellae and Luceria.
            Now these places had fallen into the hands of the Samnites by the fortune
            of war, and Rome was with difficulty struggling to preserve the
            remainder of her possessions and her influence in the neighbouring states.
            It would have been a proof of the greatest pusillanimity had the Samnites
            wished now to give up the war, and how could they be suppliants
            for peace without renouncing all their conquests? No allusion is made to a
            surrender of Fregellae. It appears that the whole story of the embassy for
            peace, at least in the colouring which Livy gives it, is a fiction.
            Moreover the truce, of two years is very doubtful, and owes its
            existence, perhaps, only to the poverty of the annals, as there
            were no materials found to fill up the blank. We need not suppose that a
            formal truce was made, in order to understand that the war ceased for a
            time. The wars of that period were not acute maladies, which, in rapid
            development, led either to recovery or death. They were chronic
            evils, to which men became accustomed, often interrupted by long
            pauses, when weariness or accidental circumstances caused a relaxation of
            warlike activity. This seems to have been the case at that time. The
            Romans as well as the Samnites avoided for a time a direct collision,
            and confined themselves to defensive operations and to
            smaller enterprises, to inducing the allies of the opposite party
            to desert, and to arranging their internal affairs. 
            
          
          After the disaster of Caudium, the Romans had
            abandoned the plan of penetrating into Samnium. On their own side they were
            tolerably safe from any attacks of the prefecture. enemy on Rome, as long
            as the country around showed itself faithful and devoted. They had
            therefore leisure left them for a political reform. Capua, which had
            retained its own municipal constitution and internal self-government, was
            now made a Rom an prefecture, a prefect being sent there from Rome to decide
            all law-suits in which the numerous Roman citizens settled in Capua were
            concerned. Such a measure was clearly favourable to the Roman element
            among the population; and even if the new arrangement was not used to the
            prejudice of the natives, it was a sign that they were no longer what they
            had been, a free and independent people. But if, under the protection of
            the Roman law and the Roman prefect, the Roman settlers and tradesmen in
            Capua pursued their own advantages beyond just bounds, as the Romans were only
            too apt to do in subject countries, a strong opposition against the
            Roman supremacy in Capua could not fail to spring up. We shall find that
            this was actually the case soon after.
            
          
          A second measure of a similar kind was a new
            organisation of the colony of Antium. This colony had
            been founded in the year 338, as a colony of Roman citizens. The number of
            colonists was only three hundred. The legal relation between the native
            Volscian population and the Roman citizens had probably been not
            very favourable to the former, and must have led to discontent, which
            at the present conjuncture was very serious. A commission therefore was
            appointed by the senate to regulate afresh the organisation of the colony,
            and, as we may presume, to grant concessions to the legitimate wishes
            of the subject population.
            
          
          After the comparative rest which, according to Livy’s
            account, was the consequence of an armistice asked for by the Samnites and
            granted by the Romans, the war was renewed by both belligerents in
            Campania. The Samnites gained possession of several towns, either by force
            or by agreement with the inhabitants. We may presume that in every
            community there was a Roman and a Samnite party, and that when a town is
            reported to have joined either the one or the other nation, an internal
            struggle and a revolution had taken place, by which either
            the aristocratic, i.e. the Roman, or the democratic, i.e. the Samnite, party got the upper hand. By means of their partisans
            the Samnites hoped now to obtain possession also of Capua, Ausona, Minturnae, and Vescia.
            Fear alone restrained these allies of the Romans from open rebellion,
            and they did not dare to declare themselves without restraint so long
            as Rome seemed strong enough to punish them.
            
          
          Under these circumstances we might imagine that Rome
            required her whole strength to defend the menaced towns and to intimidate
            those who were wavering in their faith. But in the year 315 BC, when the
            two most eminent men of the state, L. Papirius Cursor and
            Q. Publilius Philo were consuls, we are surprised to read in Livy
            that the consuls (whose names he does not mention) remained in Rome, while
            an army under the dictator Q. Fabius Maximus besieged, and at last
            reduced, the small town of Saticula in Campania.
            In the same year the Samnites penetrated in great force into Campania,
            which they compelled the dictator to evacuate. He retired by the only road
            still open to the Romans, which led to Latium, past the town of Lautulae,
            between the sea and the hills. It is probable that during
            these critical events the two consuls were by no means idle in Rome,
            but that they attacked the Samnites in Apulia, as the Samnites attacked
            the Romans in Campania. At this time Luceria fell, it is said, ‘for the
            second time’ into the power of the Romans. Now, if the alleged conquest of Luceria
              immediately after the Caudine disaster is an
              invention, we may assume that the real conquest took place in
                the year 315; that in this year the consuls Papirius and Publilius made
                the march into Apulia, which was erroneously placed in the year 320; and
                that, on account of their absence, a dictator was appointed to make head
                against the Samnites in Campania. Both nations seemed more intent on
                attack than defence, each aimed at the heart of the other, like the Romans
                and Carthaginians at a later period. Such a plan of war was sure to
                lead the Romans to victory, because their power was soundest and strongest
                in Latium and the immediate vicinity of the capital. But it was not
                unattended with serious danger; for if the fortune of war should
                decide against them, a defeat in the neighbourhood of Rome would be
                more ruinous to their authority over their allies and subjects than a
                disaster at a distance. Now, as the flower of the Roman army was far away
                with the consuls in Apulia, the dictator Q. Fabius had only a
                reserve army to oppose to the sudden advance of the Samnites. Livy
                has given himself much trouble to place the campaign of Fabius in the most
                favourable light. He makes Fabius twice defeat the Samnites, but what was
                the principal event of the campaign he cannot conceal, and, even if
                we had not the testimony of Diodorus, it would be clear from Livy himself
                that the Romans suffered a signal defeat at Lautulae.
                
              
          Yet the victory of the Samnites does not seem to have
            had the important results which might naturally have been expected,
            considering the situation of Lautulae in the narrowest place of the only road
            to Campania which was open to the Romans after the loss of Fregellae. If
            the Samnites had profited by their victory, Campania would have
            been lost to the Romans, and Latium most seriously threatened. But
            although everything looked favourable for the Samnites, although several towns
            dependent on Rome openly rebelled or inclined to rebellion, wp still see that, directly after the battle of Lautulae
            the war took a turn so favourable for Rome that from this time forward her
            superiority becomes more and more evident. Whether it was only want
            of ability in the Samnite generals which hindered them from advancing
            after Lautulae, or whether the two consuls of the year 315 , Papirius and
            Publilius—who, as we supposed, conducted the war in Apulia and
            regained Luceria—compelled the Samnites to return for the defence of
            their own country, must remain undecided. At any rate the period now
            following is marked by a series of successes for Rome, which above all
            things fully secured to them the possession of Campania.
            
          
          First of all, the threatened rebellion of Capua was
            averted by energetic measures. Since the time when Capua, in the first
            Samnite war, had joined Rome under the influence of the nobility, it had
            enjoyed entire self-government for internal affairs. A great number
            of Romans had settled in many districts of Campania, especially in
            Capua. The nobles of Capua had received the right of Roman citizenship.
            The number of Roman citizens was so large that from the year 318 a
            prefect was sent from Rome to administer Roman law in that place.
            Whether the mass of the people in Capua felt comfortable under the new
            system, we may reasonably doubt. Their burthens had no doubt very much
            increased, since Rome had confiscated the public laud, and had indemnified the
            nobility of Capua for its loss by commanding that each of the 1,600 knights
            should receive an annual payment of 450 denarii from the
            public treasury. By this measure the nobility of Capua were firmly
            united to the Roman interests, and the hopes of the oppressed nation would
            of necessity turn from Rome to the Samnites. It is not necessary to assume
            an exceptional oppression of the Capuans by the Roman
            officers or settlers in order to, understand that every
            military success of the Samnites must have endangered the possession of
            Capua.
            
          
          On the intelligence of the agitation prevailing in
            Capua and of the contemplated rebellion, a dictator was immediately named to
            conduct the inquiry into the intended treason, whereupon the two heads of
            the conspiracy Ovius and Novius Calavius committed suicide. The case of
            the malcontents was therefore hopeless and the conspiracy
            was crushed. But the inquiry continued notwithstanding, and it
            appeared that Roman citizens, and even some of the first men of the
            republic, were implicated. It is clear that these men could not be charged
            with the design of trying to deliver Capua over to the enemies of the
            republic. No Roman could be capable of such treason to his
            country. It seems that the intended rebellion of Capua led to accusations
            and recriminations among the old patrician and the new plebeian nobles,
            each party charging the other with having caused the danger of a revolt in
            Capua. Such disputes arise wherever strong political parties differ
            about the government of dependent countries. If we remember how
            opposed the two great parties in England always were on such questions as
            the treatment of Ireland or the American plantations, we can easily
            understand that something similar might happen in Rome with regard
            to Capua. The accounts are unfortunately very imperfect, but only
            intelligible in the light here indicated. The inquiry led to nothing. After the
            danger had been removed by the suicide of the two Capuan patriots,
            the two parties of the Roman nobility indulged in mutual accusations.
            The old nobility proceeded from the defence to the attack. Even the dictator,
            C. Maenius, who had been named to conduct the
            inquiry, was obliged to clear himself of charges brought against him;
            Publilius Philo, no doubt the first man of the liberal party, was in the
            same situation. But, as a really treasonable act could not be proved
            against any one, the inquiry was by degrees dropped, especially as it
            had lost its immediate importance by the restoration of Roman supremacy in
            Capua.
            
          
          The rapid suppression of the intended revolt in Capua
            was rendered possible by the great energy with which in the meantime the
            Romans had acted elsewhere. While Capua was wavering in its fidelity,
            other dependent towns had shown a leaning towards the Samnite cause. In
            the lower valley of the Liris, in that district which forms the
            connecting link between Campania proper and Latium, there dwelt a tribe of
            the Volscians, the Ausonians or Auruneans. The
            towns of Ausona, Minturnae, and Vescia seemed
            inclined to maintain their independence and neutrality. By a conspiracy of the
            aristocratic party, these towns were betrayed into the hands of the
            Romans, and fearfully punished for having dared to waver in
            their allegiance to Rome. The inhabitants were all massacred, and, as
            Livy says, the race of the Ausonians exterminated. It was a warning to all
            the subject and allied towns of what they had to expect if they should allow
            their fidelity to be even suspected.
            
          
          About the same time, or shortly before, the colony of
            Sora likewise fell into the power of the Romans. The inhabitants of the
            town, who had betrayed the Roman colonists to the Samnites, now underwent
            their punishment. They were led to Rome, scourged and beheaded in the
            Forum, as Livy' says, to the great delight of the people, to whom it was
            very important that Roman citizens sent out as colonists should be
            safe. More important than the recovery of Sora was that of Fregellae,
            which commanded the upper line of road, the Via Latina, from Rome to
            Campania. Thus, in spite of the defeat at Lautulae, the communication with
            Campania was perfectly restored, and several places, such as Atina and Calatia, which had
            been lost after the Caudine disaster, were now
            recovered. The important town of Nola was also taken. The whole of
            Campania was now again in the possession of the Romans, and, in order to
            secure this possession for the future, colonies were established
            in several places. The colony of Cales, not far
            from Capua, had in all storms and dangers proved itself a mainstay
            of the Roman power in Campania, and had contributed a great deal to
            limit the successes of the Samnites, and to render possible the recovery
            of what had been lost. Rome now strengthened her position in those parts
            by colonies in Suessa Aurunca,
            in Saticula, and Interamna.
            Even a maritime colony was established on one of the islands of Pontiae intended to protect the Latin and
            Campanian coasts. Two years later the first appointment was made of
            two commanders of the fleet (duumviri navales),
            from which it appears that the Romans now proposed to extend their
            dominion also over the waters of the Tyrrhenian Sea.
            
          
          Rome displayed equal energy on the eastern theatre of
            war in Apulia. After Luceria had been taken, a colony or rather garrison
            of 2,500 men was sent thither. Thus the Samnites were on each side more
            and more hemmed in by Roman colonies. These colonies marked the
            growth of Roman dominion, as the rings mark the annual growth of a
            tree. The colonies of the Greeks arose accidentally, without a certain
            plan and object, generally in consequence of civil disputes or under the
            pressure of distress. As soon as they were established, they formed
            themselves into independent communities. The Roman colonies
            remained, like the children of the family, under the paternal
            power, and, in the first place, served not their own interests, but
            the interests of the parent state, of which they were and remained
            members. Their principal object was the establishment of Roman power.
            Every colony was a fortress intended to protect the boundary and to
            keep subjects in their allegiance to Rome. Their
            establishment therefore was not left to chance or to the free decision
            of individuals. It was determined by decree of the senate and by a
            vote of the people, when and where a colony should be sent out, what
            amount of territory should be devoted to it, and how many colonists should
            be dispatched. The participation in such an expedition was therefore
            by no means always a coveted advantage, but in many instances a
            burthensome and dangerous service rendered by the citizen to the state.
            For the colonists marched out as a garrison into a conquered town, and
            found themselves mostly in the midst of a hostile population, exposed to
            the first attacks of every enemy. The reward for this troublesome service
            was very sparing, and, even in the times of the ancient simplicity, but
            few men could be tempted to join voluntarily in the establishment of a
            colony. The lands which were taken from the conquered inhabitants of
            a colony were parcelled out in lots of a few jugera to the Roman colonists. This pittance, and the right of using the
            common pasture, was all for which the Roman settler left his country with
            his family and devoted himself to life-long military service. For he was
            obliged not only to defend the new colony, but he was also obliged to serve
            in  the Roman army. He retained the full Roman franchise, if he went
            out as a member of a regular colony of Roman citizens (colonia civium Romanorum), which after the war with
            the Latins were limited to maritime towns, or he became a Latin by joining
            in a Latin colony. It was chiefly by these that Rome secured her dominion
            in Italy. In the wars of Hannibal there existed thirty
            Latin colonies, twelve of which began to waver in their
            fidelity, driven to despair by the burdens and losses of the war.
            In the second Samnite war the colonising policy of the Romans was
            first pursued with great energy, and to this in a great measure they owed
            the durability of their conquests. In the art of siege the Samnites were
            not more advanced than the Romans. A fortified place, which was not
            taken by surprise or by treason, could baffle the efforts of
            the largest army; the chain of colonies therefore which was drawn
            around Latium, Campania, and Apulia made it possible for the Romans to
            confine themselves at any time to the defensive, and either to prosecute
            the war energetically or to make a pause, as they pleased. They did not
            yet aim at the conquest of Samnium. The prize in the second Samnite war
            was Campania, as in the first Punic war it was Sicily. As soon, therefore,
            as the possession of Campania seemed secure, the war had no
            further object, and Rome could occupy herself with further plans for
            the extension of her dominion.
            
          
          During all the long years of their wars with the
            Latins  and the Samnites, the Romans had
            remained unmolested by the Etruscans. Sutrium and Hepete, the two border towns, colonised and fortified
            after the conquest of the territory of Veii, covered the frontier as far
            as the Ciminian mountains. Caere and Falerii, lying
            south of this frontier wall, could not maintain their freedom after
            the fall of Veii, and soon became dependent on Rome. The towns of
            central and northern Etruria seem to have enjoyed comparative peace and
            prosperity, even after the splendour and strength of the nation had declined,
            and it had been compelled to yield on every side to the encroachments of
            foreign powers. Still Etruria proper was of all the districts of Italy the
            richest in large, flourishing, industrious towns, among which Volsinii, Arretium, Perusia, and Cortona were conspicuous. But these separate
            states, although, as it is reported, enjoying a federal union, seem never
            to have united for vigorous common action. Special leagues were formed
            among single towns for special purposes, but the strength of the whole
            nation was never combined to ward off a common danger.
            
          
          A peace of forty years had been concluded in the year
            351 BC between Rome and Tarquinii. With surprising conscientiousness this peace
            seems to have been observed the on both sides. The greatest dangers and
            troubles which Rome passed through at the time of the revolt of the
            Etruscans, Latins, and after the catastrophe of Caudium, were no
            inducement to the Etruscans to renew the war. Only towards the time when
            the forty years’ peace was drawing to a close, there appear traces of
            renewed hostilities, and in the year 311 the war really breaks out. The
            cause of this is, as usual with Roman writers, put down to the fault
            of the Etruscans; but it is difficult to believe that, if they had wished
            for war, they would have waited for the time when the Romans could oppose
            them vigorously. The war turned on the possession of the colony of Sutrium. All the towns of Etruria, with the exception
            of Arretium, had, it is reported,’ united to
            attack this strong fort, established for the defence of the Roman boundary. A
            Roman army that had marched out under the consul Aemilius Barbula, to deliver Sutrium,
            suffered a reverse. It was now evident that the Etruscan war must be carried on
            with all possible energy, as it was not likely that the Samnites would
            fail to make use of the opportunity which the division of the Roman forces
            offered to them.
            
          
          Livy’s account of the Etruscan wars is one of the most
            striking illustrations of the manner in which the simple and meagre
            traditions of the earlier period were worked up by successive writers into
            long narratives, full of rhetorical ornament, audacious fiction,
            repetitions and exaggerations. We are able, from internal evidence, to
            declare that by far the greater part of the vaunted exploits of Q. Fabius Maximus
            is an invention or an agglomeration of successive inventions, derived probably
            from the family traditions of the Fabian house. The Fabians seem, on
            the whole, to have made free use of the several Etruscan wars for the
            glorification of their family. The Fabian settlement on the Cremera in the year 479 is represented as an heroic
            deed undertaken by this family alone for the whole Roman nation. A
            suspicious similarity appears between the massacre of the three hundred
            and six Fabians on the Cremera and the story of
            the consulship of C. Fabius in the year 358, when three hundred and seven
            Romans were made prisoners by the Tarquinians and slain. Two years
            later a Fabius, the consul M. Fabius Ambustus, avenged
            this disgrace by a brilliant victory over the Tarquinians and Faliscans, on which occasion the fanciful story makes
            the Etruscan priests rush into battle armed with torches and snakes, to
            inspire their countrymen with courage.
            
          
          Many of these stories of the Fabian annals contain
            elements for a poetical treatment of history, such as was undertaken at a
            later period by Naevius and Ennius. More
            especially do we recognise these features in all that is related of the
            deeds of Q. Fabius Maximus. He defeats the Etruscans, who besiege Sutrium, in a great battle, takes thirty-eight standards
            from them, and captures their camp. He then pursues them across the Ciminian
            mountains into central Etruria. The Ciminian mountains, a line of
            hills of moderate elevation, now called the mountains of
            Viterbo, formed the northern frontier of Roman Etruria. They
            are represented as a terrible pathless wilderness, through which even
            merchants never attempted to pass. When the senate hears of the intention
            of Fabius to venture with his army into these mountains, they are thrown into
            consternation, and immediately dispatch messengers to the consul
            to dissuade him from so dangerous an undertaking. But it is too late.
            Fabius has already crossed the mountains when the ambassadors arrive. He
            was pursuing the defeated Etruscans, having sent his baggage on before him secretly
            by night, and followed with the legions, bringing up the rear with his
            horse. Thus, early on the second morning he reached the ridge of the
            mountains where the luxuriant plains of central Etruria lay stretched
            before his eyes. But Fabius had not entered on this hazardous enterprise
            without preparations before he started. He had sent his brother to explore
            the country. This brother had been brought up in Caere,
            and understood the language of the Etruscans. A slave, who, as foster
            brother, had been educated with him, accompanied him. Disguised
            as shepherds, the two spies threaded their way across the pathless
            mountains, carefully confining their questions to - what was most
            necessary, so that they might not betray themselves as foreigners; but they
            found that they were hardly suspected, as no one could conceive it possible
            that a stranger would venture through the Ciminian forest. They
            penetrated as far as Umbria where the Camertines declared
            themselves ready to receive the Roman army as friends, if it came into
            their neighbourhood. After Fabius had crossed the mountains with his army,
            he laid waste and plundered the rich country round about.
            The consequence was that ‘an Etruscan army larger than ever before’
            assembled near Sutrium, was surprised by the
            Romans, and defeated with a loss of 60,000 men. How in the end Fabius
            appears again before Sutrium, south of the
            Ciminian forest, remains a mystery. What could have been the use of his
            celebrated march into the interior of Etruria if he had not even drawn
            away the enemy from the siege of Sutrium? What
            is improbable in this representation is avoided in other annals, which,
            as Livy reports, placed the victory of Fabius, not near Sutrium, but north of the Ciminian forest, at Perusia. The victory was decisive, as Livy imagines,
            wherever it may have been won, for it induced the towns of Perusia, Cortona, and Arretium to conclude a treaty of peace with Rome for thirty years.
            
          
          The greatness of Q. Fabius is not displayed in his
            military exploits only. To the victory over his enemies he added the yet
            more glorious victory over himself. While he was overthrowing the
            Etruscans, his colleague Marcius was hard pressed by the Samnites. A
            second disaster like that at Caudium seemed impending. Only a
            dictator could inspire new hopes, and one man only, the old and tried
            Papirius Cursor, was worthy of the general confidence. But by which
            consul should Papirius be appointed dictator? Marcius was surrounded by his enemies,
            wounded, perhaps dead, and the other consul was Fabius Maximus, the irreconcilable
            enemy of Papirius, who, in his dictatorship, had, from jealousy and envy,
            sought his life, under the pretext of vindicating military discipline, and
            had with difficulty been prevented from shedding the blood of his rival.
            In spite of this, the senate sent messengers to Fabius with the request that by
            virtue of his office he should appoint Papirius Cursor as dictator.
            Silently and with gloomy looks Fabius listened to the embassy.
            The hatred of his enemy was struggling in him against the love of his
            country. But in the stillness of the night he rose, as was customary on
            the appointment of a dictator, and conferred on his worst enemy, Papirius
            Cursor, the highest office of the state, making himself thereby
            his subordinate. Then, without adding one word, he dismissed the
            ambassadors, unmoved by their praises or their thanks for the sacrifice he
            had made of his private feelings.
            
          
          The campaign of Papirius Cursor against the Samnites
            was the last led by the old hero. He took the command of the army which had
            been formed for the defence of the city when the march of Fabius into the
            interior of Etruria had terrified the senate. With this army he
            delivered the consul Marcius from his dangerous situation, and defeated
            the Samnites in a great battle. He celebrated a splendid triumph. It was
            remembered that a number of gilt and silver shields, which in later times
            decorated the Roman Forum on festive occasions, were first seen in
            Borne in the triumphal procession of Papirius, who had taken them as
            spoils of war from a chosen band of the Samnites.
            
          
          But the triumph which Q. Fabius celebrated was still
            more brilliant and more highly deserved. His campaigns had been one
            unbroken success. After his victory at Sutrium he
            defeated the Umbrians; then he gained a glorious triumph at the Vadimonian Lake over an army of Etruscans such as had
            never before been opposed to the Romans; and lastly, Livy mentions another
            victory of Fabius at Perusia. The town receives a
            Roman garrison, and a truce is magnanimously granted to the Etruscans by
            the senate. This terminates the Etruscan war, which is in reality
            only a series of heroic deeds done by Fabius. In the following year
            peace is concluded for forty years. The result is that all remains as it
            was before. The Roman dominion is not extended, no new colony established
            in Etruria, no Etruscan town becomes dependent on Rome. Thus all the
            great victories of Fabius Maximus, if measured by this
            result, dwindle down to a successful predatory invasion of
            Etruria which sufficed to make the Etruscans desist from all further
            molestation of the Roman frontier districts.
            
          
          Where the principal parts of history are so much
            distorted and uncertain, we cannot expect to find chronological accuracy. Our
            authorities are not agreed whether the dictatorship of Papirius Cursor fell in
            the consulship of Q. Fabius, 310 BC, or whether (which would be very
            surprising) it filled the year after the expiration of the consulship of
            Fabius and Marcius, i.e. the year 309 BC. In the latter case, which
            is supported by the Capitoline Fasti, Fabius would have fought his three
            last battles, that with the Umbrians and the two on the Vadimonian Lake and at Perusia,
            with the Etruscans, as proconsul; in the former, which Livy seems more
            inclined to adopt, the march of Fabius over the Ciminian mountains, his
            invasion of Etruria, the conclusion of the forty years' truce with the
            Etruscan towns, the breach of the truce, and the renewed war and second
            conquest—in short, the five or six battles—would all have taken place in
            one year together with the triumph of Fabius. This is rather too
            great a tax on our powers of belief. The sheer impossibility of
            compressing into so short a time such a succession of exploits leads to the
            conclusion that we have here come upon a set of the most impudent and foolish
            fictions, which had, indeed, a substratum of truth, but a very moderate
            one, compared with the superstructure. One thing is satisfactory—that the
            materials we possess enable us to throw overboard the useless mass,
            and that something remains that seems tolerably trustworthy.
            
          
          A contrast to the spurious history of the exploits of
            Q. Fabius Maximus in Etruria is furnished by a simple account of an episode in
            the great war, which, though an fleet, incident of no great importance,
            and involving no great results, is interesting to us on more than one
            account. There is no reason to doubt its truth, and it throws a
            striking light on the manner in which the war was carried on,
            while it is also the first occasion on which we hear of a
            Homan fleet. We should like very much to know how it happened that
            this genuine fragment of history was preserved in the great mass of
            worthless declamation and fiction. It has reference to the town of Pompeii, and
            we may perhaps venture to think that the same town which in our own days
            is surrendering vast treasures of the most genuine relics
            of antiquity, held in safe keeping for eighteen centuries,
            did preserve the authentic memory of this incident, and handed it
            down to be incorporated by the annalists into the history of Rome. Tin now
            a Homan fleet has not been mentioned. If we did not know that Home, from the
            year 338, was in possession of the old Volscian port of Antium, that
            in the year 313 a Roman colony was established on the island of Pontia, and that since 311 the office of admiral of
            the fleet had existed, we might suppose that the Homans had not yet
            ventured on the sea. But now we are told that the Homan fleet sailed to
            Campania, under the command of P. Cornelius, and approached Pompeii.
            The crew landed, plundered the territory of Nuceria,
            and were returning to their ships, laden with spoil, when they were assaulted by
            the country people, not far from their ships, and deprived of their booty.
            Some were killed; the rest escaped on board their vessels. This predatory
            expedition was surely not the only one undertaken by the Roman fleet, and
            the Samnites, we may suppose, or their allies, retaliated by similar
            attacks on the coasts of Latium and Campania. The war was not therefore
            carried on exclusively in the grand and legitimate style, by armies
            marching to meet armies in the field, or to conquer or defend fortified
            towns. There was a good deal left of the old practice of plundering and
            devastating which seems to have been the usual practice at an
            earlier period. We shall see further on that the same kind
            of irregular and barbaric warfare continued at a period when it was
            not only unworthy of the Roman people, but when it was fraught with social
            and political danger.
            
          
          The first exploit attributed to Fabius, who again was
            chosen consul in 308, is the conquest of this town of Nuceria in Campania, against which the expedition of the fleet was directed. It
            had formerly been allied with Rome, but seven years before had revolted,
            about the time of the battle of Lautulae, when the Roman power was
            most seriously shaken and endangered. Since that time the Romans had,
            as we have seen, regained their position in Campania step by step, and had
            strengthened it by the establishment of colonies. The re-conquest of Nuceria in the southern part of the country supplied
            the missing link in the chain of fortifications between Campania
            and the Samnite mountains.
            
          
          While Fabius was so occupied in Campania, and his
            colleague, P. Decius Mus, was bringing the Etruscan war to a close,
            Samnite troops attacked the Marsians, the allies of Rome. Fabius
            immediately marched to the assistance of the Marsians, and gained a
            victory over the Samnites. Such is the account of Diodorus, and he
            deserves our thanks for having preserved this authentic testimony; for if we
            had only the account of Livy we should have no choice but to accept his
            statement, that the Marsians revolted from the Romans, and joined the
            Samnites, and that the combined hostile armies were defeated by Fabius. We
            have here another instance of the perversion of truth by national or
            family vanity. At the same time the preservation of the simple
            unadulterated report of Diodorus is a proof that we are no longer entirely
            dependent on the caprice of any chance writer, but that the authorities
            begin to be more numerous, and supply the means of correcting errors.
            
          
          The indefatigable Fabius conducted another war, and
            brought it to a conclusion in the year of his consulship 308. This was the
            war against the Umbrians. A victory of Fabius over the Umbrians is already
            referred to the year 309, in which he hurried on from one victory to
            another. Perhaps it is the same event which is repeated in the annals of
            the year 308. How the Umbrians happened to begin hostilities against Rome, we
            are not told. Perhaps they had joined the Etruscans in their attack
            on Sutrium. It was, however, by no means all the
            Umbrians who took part in the war. The Umbrian Camertines appear
            amicably disposed towards Rome in the story of the spies of Q. Fabius. The Ocriculanians entered into a treaty of
            friendship with Rome. But the others threatened at once to march upon
            Rome, and as the consul Decius was not strong enough to resist them,
            Fabius left his province Samnium, invaded Etruria, and defeated
            the enemy at Mevania in so decisive a battle
            that their complete subjugation was the consequence.
            
          
          The war with Samnium had now lasted nearly twenty
            years. The Samnites had often been successful in the field, but they had
            made no enduring conquests, while the Romans had firmly established themselves
            on the eastern side of Samnium in Apulia, and more especially on
            the western in Campania, so that the Samnites were shut in all round
            by a line of Roman colonies or Roman allies, and could make no direct
            attack on the centre of the Roman dominion. They were gradually losing
            strength, when fortune seemed once more to smile upon them. Discontent
            showed itself in the ranks of the Roman allies. The Hernicans, who, next
            to the Latins, were the oldest and most tried fellow-combatants of the Romans,
            began to waver in their fidelity. Several towns of this small
            country, headed by Anagnia, the most’ important
            of them all, openly joined the Samnites. Only three towns, Aletrium, Verulae, and Ferentinum remained true to the Romans. The danger was
            great. The country of the Hernicans extended to the immediate neighborhood of Rome, and was connected with Samnium
            by the valley of the Trerus, which formed a
            convenient line of communication. An army of Samnites and Hernicans could
            easily break through the gap between Praeneste and the Alban mountains and
            appear before Borne; and if the legions were called back to protect the
            town, Campania would be sacrificed to the Samnites. The Romans were not
            without serious apprehensions, and, as in times of the
            greatest danger, two reserve armies were quickly formed and sent to
            reinforce the two consular armies of the consuls Marcius and Cornelius.
            These had evidently got into trouble, and were separated from one another.
            Cornelius was blockaded by the Samnites. But Marcius, joined by the
            reserve legions, attacked the Hernicans, and reduced them, after
            a short resistance, to complete subjection. He then hurried to the
            assistance of his colleague, and defeated the Samnites in a decisive
            battle, in which they are said to have lost 30,000 men. With thin great
            victory the war seemed ended. Further resistance the Samnites were not
            able to make. It is reported that the two consuls marched chap. through the
            enemy's country for five months, plundering and devastating it. The consul
            Marcius celebrated a magnificent triumph, and an equestrian statue was
            erected to him on the Forum. The relations of Rome to the Hernicans were
            placed on a new footing. Those towns which had remained faithful kept
            their own constitution and independence; the other Hernicans came into the
            dependent position of Roman citizens without the suffrage— that is, they
            became subjects of the Roman people, obliged to pay taxes and to serve in
            the army, without any share in the honours and advantages of citizenship.
            Even in the management of their local affairs they were limited, and
            every kind of political connexion with one another was taken from the
            separate communities. Thus the Hernicans, like the Latins a generation
            before, became the subjects of Rome, and Roman power became more
            centralized and stronger.
            
          
          We might now expect to see the Samnites completely
            exhausted and resigned to submit to Rome; but either the reports of the Roman
            victories and the devastation of Samnium by the consuls Cornelius and
            Marcius in the year 306 are very much exaggerated, or despair
            and misery drove the Samnites out of their desolated country to
            exercise their revenge and to search for the means of livelihood. In
            short, we read of an incursion which they made in the following year into
            Campania. It also appears that several Roman fortresses fell again into
            their hands, probably at the time of the defeat of the Hernicans,
            through the treachery of Hernican garrisons; for
            it is related that, in the year 305, Sora, Arpinum,
            and Cesennia were again taken from the Samnites.
            In the campaign of this year they fought with their old courage, and not
            without success; for, according to the reports of some annalists,
            the consul Postumius, after some indecisive
            engagements, retired under cover of night to the mountains. Afterwards, when he
            was joined by his colleague, Minucius, he succeeded
            in defeating the Samnites, taking prisoner their general Statius Gellius, and conquering the important town of Bovianum.
            This last feat of arms does not seem to have amounted to much, if, as is
            related, it was the third time that Bovianum fell into the hands of
            the Romans. Be that as it may, the Samnites were by no means subdued.
            They were only thrown back into their own country. Their conquests beyond
            Samnium were taken from them, and a barrier was erected against
            their further plans of conquest and predatory excursions
            into Campania, Apulia, and the other neighbouring countries, where
            they were dreaded and hated as dangerous neighbours. But they remained a free
            people in their own mountains. They concluded at last, after a long
            and chequered war, an honourable peace with Rome, by which they were
            left in possession of their independence, standing as a nation on an equal
            footing with Rome.
            
          
          Thus ended the longest and most trying war which the
            republic had ever undertaken. It had lasted for twenty-two years, and had been
            carried on by both nations with equal courage and perseverance. Victory
            was on the side of the Romans, not because they had more courage,
            determination, or higher military qualities, but because their conduct of
            the war was more systematic, because by their plan of fortified colonies
            they maintained their hold of the territory they had conquered, and
            because by the superior diplomatic skill of the senate they secured the
            friendship of the neighbours of the Samnites. This superiority had its
            root in the strong, centralised government of the Roman state, in the calm
            firmness and wisdom with which the Roman senate conducted its foreign
            policy, and in the unbroken determination with which the Romans, now
            as ever, kept a proposed object steadily in view.
            
          
          The final result of the war, although it did not bring
            about the subjection of the Samnites, was in the highest degree favourable for
            the extension and consolidation of the Roman power. The Latins, who at the
            outbreak of the war had changed their condition of allies for that
            of subjects, became one people with the Romans during the twenty-two
            years of companionship in arms. Whatever was left of rancour and
            opposition to Roman supremacy died out. Before the end of the war the
            Hernicans too, like the Latins, had become Romans. The number
            of Roman citizens had considerably increased, in spite of all the
            losses in war. Four new tribes were added to the twenty-seven older ones,
            and eight colonies, sent out in rapid succession, prepared the change of
            the old Volscian country into Roman territory, while the
            permanent possession of Campania was quite secured by the immigration of a
            great number of Roman citizens, and by the different degrees of dependence
            in which the Campanian towns stood to Rome. Roman influence now
            penetrated the whole of central and southern Italy, and had for the first
            time made itself felt in several Greek towns. Rome had become beyond all
            dispute the first power in Italy; and no people could dare from this time
            forward, singlehanded, to oppose the conquerors of the Samnites.
            
          
          
             
          
          CHAPTER XI.
                
          
          INTERNAL HISTORY TILL THE HORTENSIAN LAWS. 339-286
            B.C.
                
          
          
             
          
          Nearly a whole generation had passed away since the
            admission of the plebeians to the consulship by the Licinian laws (366 BC)
            when, by the Publilian laws (339 BC), the last remaining purely political
            offices of censor and praetor were shared with the plebeians. Now
            at last, by the Publilian legislation, the old struggle between the
            patricians and plebeians was brought to an end, after it had for nearly
            two hundred years determined the march of reform, and regulated the internal
            political life of the Roman people. Nothing now survived of
            patrician privileges but the priestly offices, which could be left
            the more easily in the possession of the ancient families, as they
            conferred no political influence in Rome, but were entirely subordinate to
            the secular authority of the state. Thus the old contrast had disappeared.
            Whatever traces were left after this time of patrician pretensions, of
            patrician arrogance and conceit, we may regard as only the faint echo of a
            storm which has passed by, which terrifies nobody and deserves not to be
            noticed or heeded. There were not wanting in Rome a number of men, who
            from obstinacy, narrow-mindedness, or dulness were closed to all new impressions and convictions, and went down to
            their graves with all their old feelings and ideas, after a new state
            of things had sprung up around them?
            
          
          The proud old patricians had not nearly given up the hope
            of conquest when the dissolution and decomposition of their body had already
            begun at the core. Being unable, by its nature, to receive new members,
            the patriciate was doomed gradually to melt away, by a natural law, which
            would have operated even without the concurrence of external
            circumstances, such as the frequent wars, to which the patricians sent
            more than their due proportion of combatants. The time was long past when
            the claims of the patricians to be considered the Roman
            nation appeared to be justified by the fact. Since the reception of
            the plebs into the comitia of centuries, the Roman people (the populus Romanus) was composed of the two classes, and
            it was in the nature of things that the plebeians, who received a constant
            accession of members from without, should increase in the same proportion
            as the patricians diminished in numbers. The original patrician
            people shrunk to a patrician nobility, and from this cause alone were
            obliged to give up the hope of preserving their old prerogative. At the
            same time, there arose by degrees a plebeian nobility, and even before the Canuleian law promoted the amalgamation of this new
            nobility with the old one by legalising marriage between the two, a
            process had already begun by which a number of plebeian
            families raised themselves to eminence above their
            fellow-plebeians, and formed, in connexion with the old patrician
            families, a new privileged class, the ‘nobility’ properly
            so-called. After the complete equalisation of the plebeians with
            the patricians in all private and public rights, this new nobility
            acquired more ground and a firmer organisation. It was not like that of
            the old patricians, limited to a certain number of families, and transmitted
            only by descent from these families, but it was recruited
            continually by those families from which the people chose the
            high officers of state. It was, therefore, essentially a nobility of
            office conferred by the people, and it was made hereditary by the solid
            organisation of the Roman family. If we employ the term ‘nobility’ to
            distinguish these new nobles from the old patricians, we must not forget
            that as long as the patrician houses yet formed an important part of the
            people, a sort of nobility must have existed within this body, in the form
            of a number of prominent families, who in point of fact were the rulers,
            inasmuch as they almost exclusively filled the offices of state.
            
          
          An indispensable condition for every nobility that
            wishes to exercise and maintain political influence is the possession of
            wealth. The patricians of the older period had been the ‘rich,’ as opposed
            to the poor dependent plebeians. For the new nobility, whose pre-eminence
            was not conferred by descent, the possession of wealth was still more
            important, and formed, in conjunction with personal merit, their first
            recommendation in the eyes of the people; for even the purest democrat has
            respect for opulence, and bestows confidence and votes most
            readily on the rich. Moreover, as soon as public offices
            promise power and advantage, the candidates for them bribe the voters
            by money. For this reason alone wealth is one of the first conditions for
            the foundation of a noble house in a republic.’ If plebeian families had
            attained to great opulence at an earlier period, the struggle between
            the two classes would not have lasted so long. After the conquest of Veii,
            perhaps even in the long wars with the rich Etruscan towns, during which
            the military pay was introduced, it appears that a period began more
            favourable to the acquisition of wealth. With the new conquests
            in Etruria and Latium, with the abolition of the old clientela, with
            the gradual development of industry and commerce, with the increasing
            employment of slaves, riches accumulated. Rome had now become a large,
            powerful, and wealthy town. Since the Latin war it had become
            the centre of the greatest extent of country which, at that time, was
            formed in Italy into one united body politic. The resolutions of the Roman
            senate, the decisions of the assembly of the Roman people, disposed of the
            existence and the fortune of whole towns and populations, of the
            foundation of colonies, the assignment of landed property, confiscations and
            grants on the largest scale. It was the acknowledged principle of the Roman
            nobility from the oldest time downwards to the end of the republic, that
            the public service should he to them the source of private wealth.
            Hence the men elected to high offices by the people, if they were not rich
            already, soon became so, and every increase of power and wealth secured
            the continuance of their privileged position, and the permanent nobility
            of their family. There is no difference observable between the old
            and the new nobility. Generosity and self-sacrifice are never to be found
            among a privileged class as such. Only individuals, who rise above the
            interests of their own class, are capable of such virtues. The plebeian members
            of the new nobility were soon closely allied with the patricians for
            upholding aristocratic principles, and it was not from among them, but
            from one of the oldest and proudest noble houses of the republic, that a
            man arose who, with discriminating eye, saw that Rome needed renovation by
            the infusion of new blood, and who carried his measure with strong and
            defiant resolution against all opposition.
            
          
          Appius Claudius Caecus, who was censor in the year 312
            and twice consul, in the years 307 and 296, was one of the most eminent
            statesmen of the republic. As hereditary features of the Claudian family, he
            possessed firmness, courage, daring, pride, and haughtiness; but he, like
            his ancestor the decemvir, Appius Claudius, and like the greatest Claudian
            of the Roman annals, the Emperor Tiberius, is placed in a false light by
            the antipathy of aristocratic historians. If these Claudians had been genuine aristocrats in heart and soul, if they had been true to
            their party and known no other motives than the interest of their
            party, they would have been lauded as models of civic virtue. But as
            they were not partisans but statesmen, they were represented by historians of
            the aristocratic party as monsters and tyrants.
            
          
          The Roman censorship, in rank the first of all
            republican offices, was endowed with extraordinary power and influence. On the
            discretion and judgment of the censors depended the political status of
            every Roman; and the assessment which they made of his property
            assigned to every one the position to be held by
            him and the measure of his public duties and privileges. They decided
            without the co-operation or interference of other magistrates, and
            subject only to the sanction of the people, on all questions of admission
            to or expulsion from the body of citizens; they selected the men whom they
            thought fit for the honourable service in the centuries of knights,
            finally they had the high discretionary power, formerly exercised by the
            kings, of admitting new members to the senate, and expelling those whom
            they deemed unworthy. In addition to this great discretionary power with
            regard to the composition and classification of the Roman people, the
            censors were intrusted with a considerable portion of the financial
            business of the state. It was their duty to let out to the highest bidder
            the public revenues from state lands, port dues, saltworks and other
            such sources. They had also the care and superintendence of public
            works and repairs, of the improvement and utilisation of the public property—of
            everything, in fact, which had reference to the material interests of the
            public, such as the construction of roads, aqueducts, markets,
            buildings for public use; and, like all other public functionaries
            in Rome, they were in all these matters not subject to any very
            strict control.
            
          
          It was not without hesitation that the Roman
            aristocracy placed such power in the hands of the censors; the original
            duration of their office, five years, seemed irreconcilable with the security
            of republican institutions. Hence, nine years after the establishment of
            the censorship, in the year 434, the censorship was limited to one year and a
            half by the dictator Mamercus Aemilius, and
            bounds were set to the powers of the censors relative to the
            choice of senators by the Ovinian law, the date
            of which is unfortunately uncertain.
            
          
          In the hands of Appius Claudius the censorship was a
            means of a radical reform. He undertook, in connexion with the plebeian
            censor C. Plautius, a measure for the reception
            of a large number of new citizens by granting the full franchise to all
            the freed men and those residents who were Roman citizens without being
            admitted to the public rights of citizens. It is not probable that, as it has
            been said, Appius in carrying this reform had any ambitious views, or
            wished to extend his personal influence at the cost of republican
            equality. It must be recollected that since the reception of the whole
            population of Caere into the ranks of Roman half-citizens
            and still more since the subjection of Latium and the grant of the same
            imperfect rights to a great number of Latins, Rome had become more and
            more the centre which attracted tradespeople, merchants, artisans, and
            adventurers of all kinds. These people enjoyed all the private rights of
            Roman citizens, and it would neither have been possible nor advisable
            to shut them out for ever entirely from the full franchise, whereby they
            were made to share not only the privileges but also the duties (especially
            of the military service) of the Roman citizens. To these free inhabitants of
            Rome who were not citizens must be added a number of freedmen and their
            descendants, people who supported themselves mostly as tradesmen, artists,
            and workmen. In the old time, when there were few slaves, the
            freedmen could not constitute an important part of the
            population. But after the successful wars beginning with the
            conquest of Veii, the number of slaves, as also that of
            freedmen, increased very much. By being emancipated, a slave became a
            freedman, but not a Roman citizen. Any Roman could, if he pleased, set his
            slave free, but the right of citizenship could only be given by the state.
            This could be done in various ways. The censors could put the name of
            an alien on the list of citizens at the general revision which took place when
            a new census was taken. That was the simplest and no doubt the most usual
            way. Such a reception of freedmen and Aerarians had probably often taken place before Appius Claudius. It must
            have recommended itself as an act of policy and justice, when men who
            were not in possession of the full citizenship had acquired landed
            property. But nothing is reported of a regular periodical reception into
            the tribes of all the half-citizens before the time of Appius Claudius. If
            it had been otherwise, the measure of Appius would not have excited
            so much attention.
            
          
          No time was more appropriate for this measure than the
            present. The second Samnite war had very much thinned the ranks of Roman
            citizens. Besides those who had fallen in battle, or who had been wounded or
            taken prisoners, the extension town of Rome had lost many citizens from the
            necessity of sending out garrisons and colonists and by voluntary emigration to
            Campania and the Latin towns where business and profit of many kinds
            attracted them. The natural increase by births could not make up for such
            losses, and therefore it was not an injurious but a most
            salutary measure for the state if Appius Claudius proposed a
            great augmentation of the number of citizens by conferring
            the privileges and duties of the state on men who had
            long practically formed a part of it, who already enjoyed its private
            rights, and were in all respects entitled to he acknowledged as Romans. Of
            course Appius excited the jealousy and enmity of a great portion of the
            old citizens.
            
          
          The ancient city communities insisted with great
            jealousy, on the exclusion of foreigners and freedmen from the sacred
            precincts of citizenship. Their patriotism was the bright side of a virtue
            the shady side of which was hatred to foreigners. Purity of race was held
            to be in itself an advantage; a mixture of blood was considered a
            corruption. The Romans, it is true, rose more above this narrow
            view than the Greeks. They received conquered enemies as citizens,
            and so became great and powerful. Appius Claudius felt himself perhaps
            especially called upon to carry out this policy on a large scale, for,
            according to a family tradition, his ancestor, Appius Claudius, had come
            from the land of the Sabines with his family and his clients, and was
            received in Rome into the rank of patrician citizens. But he met with
            powerful opposition, and succeeded only by a stretch of his official
            authority in carrying out his scheme. His political opponents saw the old
            constitution and, above all, the preponderance of the nobles, endangered
            by the admission of new citizens m large numbers, and they affected to
            look upon Appius as a demagogue, possibly aiming at tyranny and intent on
            corrupting the ‘free and independent’ electors by mixing up with them a number
            of his own creatures, who would in all things do his bidding. They failed,
            it is true, in convincing or thwarting Appius, who carried out his policy
            in spite of all opposition; but after the expiration of the censorship of
            Appius, they succeeded in materially modifying his reform. In 304 the censor Q.
            Fabius Maximus, in order to limit the influence of the new citizens, removed
            them from the country tribes into the four city tribes. By this measure
            the twenty-seven then existing country tribes remained under the
            influence of the great landed proprietors, and the town population
            possessed, in spite of its numbers, only four votes in thirty-one. For
            this wise arrangement it is said Q. Fabius received, the surname of
            Maximus, and it cannot be denied that by it the possibility was removed of
            the town population outvoting the country tribes in the
            popular assemblies, and so governing the whole state. It was
            a measure which was necessary in the absence of a representative
            constitution, if the Roman commonwealth was to be preserved from the
            danger of ochlocracy. Whether Appius resisted this modification of his
            reform we do not know. Perhaps we may suppose that he regarded it as
            an improvement on his measure, for we hear of no attempt on his part
            to get it repealed.
            
          
          Next to the new constitution of the body of citizens,
            that of the senate was also in the hands of the censors. The nucleus of
            this body consisted of men who had been chosen by the people to a high
            political office, had conscientiously fulfilled its duties, and now entered for
            life into the highest council of state. Indirectly therefore
            the senate was chosen by the people, and was in reality the true
            representation of the people. But the senatorial rank and privilege was formally
            conferred by reception into the list of senators, which the censors by virtue
            of their office drew up at stated intervals. As the annual supply of
            newly elected magistrates did not equal the natural losses by death, the
            censors had to choose, according to circumstances, a greater or less number of
            men who had not yet filled a public office. That these members were
            selected from the families of the influential nobility was to be expected,
            nor was it likely that a censor, in drawing up his list, should be quite
            free from the influence of the political party to which he belonged.
            But Appius Claudius was one of those politicians who cannot be relied
            upon by their party, who have their own ideas, and sometimes go their own
            way without heeding the time-honoured practices of their predecessors. He
            therefore, at the revision of the senatorial list, carried out his
            own will, and, disregarding the prejudices of his class,
            admitted even sons of freedmen into the senate. We do not know his motive.
            Possibly he selected men of lower rank only because they possessed
            superior ability, for we cannot presume that he wished to satisfy personal
            ambition, to create a party in the senate devoted to himself, or
            merely to vex his opponents. In truth he only carried out in the
            higher regions of political life the same principle which he had adopted
            by admitting aliens to the privileges of Roman citizens. Perhaps he thought
            that the freedmen and others who had been received into the tribes
            must have their representatives in the senate, and, with a truly Claudian
            spirit, he acted boldly and paid no attention to the outcries of the noble
            clique who thought the senate desecrated by the reception of such men.
            This reform was, however, of no great practical importance. Appius,
            it is true, introduced a new principle, but he had no means of compelling
            his successors in the censorship to apply it. Public opinion in the ruling
            circles did not approve of the reform. The old practice was subsequently
            revived. Nay, the consuls even of the succeeding year are said to have
            gone so far as to disregard the nomination of Appius, and to have summoned
            the senate according to the list set aside by Appius. At any rate
            the senate lost neither in dignity nor in political discrimination and
            power, and Appius himself lived to see a Greek statesman, the ambassador
            of King Pyrrhus, stand dazzled before the majestic council of the Homan
            elders, which he compared to an assembly of kings.
            
          
          The principal business of the censors was completed
            with the revision of the list of senators, knights, and citizens. It was
            closed with a solemn sacrifice on the Field of Mars, which gave the divine
            sanction to the new order. After this solemn act; the
            censors generally laid down their office, in compliance with the Aemilian law, which shortened the duration of their
            power to eighteen months. For the financial and administrative duties
            which they had to perform, as well as the erection and repair of public
            buildings, they usually received a special commission from the senate, and
            were furnished with the necessary authority and financial means.
            
          
          But Appius Claudius, it is further reported, declined
            to lay down his office, although the other censor, C. Plautius,
            ashamed of the conduct of his colleague, did so. He was now sole censor, and
            acted in defiance of an express and special law. He paid no attention to the
            indignation of the senate nor to the intercession of one of the tribunes, who
            threatened him with imprisonment. Relying on the support of three
            tribunes, he appropriated the public money, without the permission or
            authority of the senate, to two great public works which were
            to immortalise his name—to an aqueduct and to the magnificent road (the
            Via Appia) which, almost without a turning, led
            through Latium and the Pontine marshes to Campania. It seemed that, by
            means of the numbers of public contractors and workmen whom he employed, he was
            going to make himself the master of the state, and he disposed of the
            public revenue without any reference to the senate, as if he exercised
            already unlimited power. He seemed intent on prolonging his power
            indefinitely; for, before the five years of his censorship had expired, he
            solicited the suffrage of the people for the consulship, and he was
            actually successful in being elected for the year 307 BC.
            
          
          This story, which plainly is intended to represent
            Appius as a dangerous and violent demagogue, and which is indebted for its
            glaring colours to the enmity of the narrative, genuine nobility, is not
            only exaggerated and distorted, but without doubt in some respects utterly
            false. First, the accusation is absurd, that Appius wished to establish
            a monarchy for himself. We know from the stories of Sp. Cassius, of
            the decemvir Appius Claudius, of Sp. Maelius and M. Manlius, what such accusations mean. They may be looked upon
            as proofs that the men against whom they are directed threatened the
            dominion of the nobles. The story of the censor Appius Claudius is in some
            features identical with that of the decemvir Appius. The
            enmity against the aristocracy, the defiant arrogance, the usurpation of
            tyrannical, illegal power, and, finally, the retention of official
            authority beyond the appointed period, all these are points which show the
            intentional partisanship as well as the extreme poverty of the ancient annalists who were reduced to borrow the detail of one
            story from the other.
            
          
          The refusal of Appius to lay down the censorship
            cannot really relate to the censorship as such—in other words to the regulating
            the census, the new ordering of the senators, of the knights, and of the
            tribes and centuries. All these matters were completely finished and
            settled before the solemn lustrum Was concluded. There was no need that
            Appius should act further as censor with respect to this part of his
            functions, nor is he charged with having done so. But great buildings
            could not be erected in eighteen months. For the completion of such works,
            which required a long time, the office of the censor was under ordinary
            circumstances extended by a decision of the senate. But it seems that, in
            consequence of his liberal reforms, Appius met with opposition in the
            senate, and that, even if the majority were not against him,
            his opponents had gained one or more of the tribunes of the people,
            who, by virtue of their veto, could frustrate every formal resolution
            which might be adopted in favour of Appius. Such an opposition Appius was
            enabled to resist on the strength of the fundamental principle of
            constitutional law, which did not sanction any process for compelling a
            magistrate to resign. As long as Appius, therefore, had a strong party in
            the senate and among the people, who on his finally resigning would
            guarantee his acquittal, or as long as he could reckon on a tribune
            who would oppose an impeachment, he could securely proceed to execute
            the duties of his office which had been intrusted to him. Above everything
            he was secure of the support of the people, on account of the popular
            measures he had carried, as well as of the great buildings which he had undertaken,
            and which directly or indirectly were intended for the benefit of the
            lower classes, by furnishing lucrative employment for thousands, and by
            supplying a poor quarter of the town with water. Appius might have carried all
            his measures by the support of the people alone. A resolution of the tribes was
            binding on the whole state. If such a resolution commissioned him
            to carry out the public works, and voted the funds, the senate was
            obliged to comply. However, the veto of a tribune, acting in the interest
            of the obstructive party, might have presented a resolution of the people
            being carried, and in that case there would have been no remedy for
            the people but to wait until they could elect ten tribunes unanimously in
            favour of Appius Claudius. Everything considered, it is much more probable
            that Appius had a majority in the senate, and that this body, in the
            very beginning of his censorship, had approved of his projects, and had
            voted the money for them. Without such a legal title, Appius would, not have been
            able to expend the sums which his public works required.
            
          
          It was the indisputable right of the senate, to
            control the finances, and to grant to all the magistrates the supplies
            which they required. A violation of this constitutional law, such as has been
            ascribed to Appius, would not have been without grave consequences, and
            would have exposed the privilege of the senate to be questioned and
            set aside by every ambitious and unscrupulous politician. It seems, therefore,
            that Appius, in spite of the opposition of a strong party, had still a
            majority in the senate, and could carry out his measures in a
            constitutional way. The story of the annalists,
            starting from the opposite point of view, has here disregarded the
            laws of probability, and overstepped the bounds of what was possible.
            
          
          The two great public works of Appius were, during the
            whole time of the republic and the empire, evidences of the enterprising spirit
            of their author. The Appian aqueduct brought pure water—one of the greatest
            necessities of hot unhealthy Rome—from the Sabine mountains, partly
            in subterranean passages, partly on huge arches, into the most thickly
            populated part of the town, between the Tiber and the Aventine. The Appian road
            followed in the main that which had always united Rome with
            the Liris, and further on with Capua; but now it was, as much as
            possible, carried on in a straight direction, made horizontal by mounds and by
            cuttings, and perhaps it was already paved in part. The Appian road was
            the first of those magnificent lines of communication by which
            the Romans understood so well how to connect their conquests with the
            chief town, and which afterwards, starting from Rome, traversed Italy in
            all directions, and extended to the furthest posts in the remotest
            provinces where the Roman soldier guarded the frontier. Streets and
            roads are always an unfading criterion by which to judge of
            the condition of a people with regard to its political and
            social development. The entire want of well-made roads is
            an unmistakable sign of barbarism. With the first development of
            agriculture, trade, and manufactures, the need is apparent of convenient
            ways of communication. Without good roads no states of great extent can be
            formed. Only as these are improved and extended can distant provinces
            establish a regular and profitable intercourse with one another; in fact,
            roads are indispensable for the administration, control, and government of
            a large country, and for that political unity which is the
            first condition of a civilised state. The want of roads in Greece, occasioned
            by the natural obstacles of rugged mountains, and only partly compensated
            by maritime intercourse, greatly encouraged the spirit of local
            independence in the Hellenic towns. The physical features of Italy were
            less unfavourable for the construction of roads, and the practical sense
            of the Romans made use at an early period of this means of bringing
            together the different parts of the state. Their roads for the most part
            served military purposes, and only in a less degree the wants
            of commercial intercourse, and by this peculiarity they characterised the
            Roman empire, which was based not upon productive activity, nor on the
            co-operation of members enjoying equal rights, but on undisputed military
            dominion exercised from one grand centre.
            
          
          It is an agreeable surprise to learn that Rome, in the
            midst of a long bloody war, could find leisure, interest, and means, not
            only for warlike, but also for peaceful purposes, which were likely to promote
            the well-being and prosperity of coming generations. We see in this fact a
            growth of national affluence which could hardly have been
            expected. Certainly a great part of the means necessary for the great
            public works of Appius was a result of the victories of the Roman legions.
            The additions to the state domains, which were farmed, were no doubt
            great, and the booty of war had enriched many 5 the number of slaves was
            much increased by the capture of prisoners, and thus hands were not
            wanting for employment on the works. But independently of this, it seems
            that opulence and prosperity were continually increasing in Rome. The
            whole reform of Appius can be explained only by the growth of a
            productive, industrious population. Nor do we lack special indications
            pointing to the same fact. The droll story of the refractory musicians is
            interesting, not merely as one of the few features of humour in the
            history of the Romans, but as showing us a little of their
            social life, from which we gather that, even in the midst of a great
            war, there were sociable pleasures, quiet enjoyment, and even boisterous
            revelry.
            
          
          The guild of pipers, in high repute since Numa’s time, was accustomed every year, at the festival of
            Minerva, the so-called little Quinquatrus, in June,
            to celebrate a feast in the temple of Jupiter, and then, with masks and
            women’s dress, to parade the town. The stem censor Appius
            Claudius thought proper to issue an order forbidding this
            perhaps objectionable and misused privilege. But in this matter he
            found that he had to deal with people who would not be trifled with. The guild
            of pipers decided to leave Rome, as at one time the plebs had done, and they
            betook themselves to the neighbouring city of Tibur. The case was serious.
            At all the great festivities, at marriages and burials, at all public
            sacrifices and feasts, the necessary and solemn music was wanting. How
            easily might this neglect give offence to the gods, who jealously insisted
            on the strictest and most conscientious observances in their service!
            General anxiety seized all the people and the senate were obliged to
            acknowledge themselves beaten, and to invite the exasperated musicians to
            return to Rome. But these felt that they had the advantage, and remained
            in Tibur. Thereupon the Tiburtines, wishing to
            oblige their Roman friends, hit upon a ruse. On a certain evening
            they invited all the pipers to different houses, and gave them so
            much wine that they were soon fit to be packed in waggons and conveyed
            back to Rome. When they awoke the next morning from their drunken sleep
            and found they had been outwitted, they consented to remain in Rome,
            but only under the guarantee of their old privilege, which from that time they
            exercised without any further interference.
            
          
          How seasonable and salutary those measures were which
            aimed at the extension of the franchise and the doing away of the
            privileges of a class, we may gather from many features of the Roman
            history of that time. As early as 313 the last remnant of the old cruel
            law of debt disappeared: on the proposal of the dictator C. Poetelius
            imprisonment for debt for Roman citizens was abolished. This important
            progress towards the humane treatment of debtors, which is not yet made
            everywhere in the law of modem Europe, is the more surprising
            among the Romans, as they were formerly accustomed to treat insolvent
            debtors like criminals.
            
          
          A further concession to the people related to the
            election chap, of military tribunes, the principal officers of the legion. In
            every legion there were six of these, and therefore twenty-four in the four
            legions annually levied. Originally the consuls had the right to appoint them.
            In the year 362 BC the election of six of them was given to the people
            now, tribunes, in 311, it was decided that sixteen should be
            annually elected by the comitia of tribes. It is not possible to explain
            this change from military motives. The nomination of the inferior officers
            by the commander-in-chief is surely preferable to a popular election. It
            must consequently be presumed that the election of the legionary
            tribunes by the people had for its object to make the advantage
            of higher pay, larger shares in the division of the spoils, and of
            grants of land dependent on the will of the people.
            
          
          The same democratic tendency is expressed in the
            election of Cn. Flavins, the son of a freedman, as curule aedile in the year
            304. Flavius was an intimate political friend of Appius Claudius, and was
            probably by his reform admitted to the full rights of citizenship. He had
            till now belonged to the influential class of public clerks, a
            class of men most useful and indeed indispensable to the public
            magistrates, who did not possess the knowledge of detail necessary in the
            various departments of the public service. The magistrates were elected to
            office through the influence of their family and party, and by the
            favour of the people, not on account of aptitude for or knowledge of
            business, and they remained in office too short a time to make up for
            their defects. The public clerks, on the other hand, made their living by
            doing all the routine work, and they devoted themselves entirely and
            permanently to their professional duties. They were practically
            acquainted with all the rules, customs, traditions, and experiences
            of office, with the numerous formularies and observances. There were,
            no doubt, among them men of great skill and ability. But they were
            freedmen, not freeborn Romans. Their offices were not honorary but stipendiary.
            It was therefore a novel and a bold step for Cn. Flavius to come forward
            as a candidate for the aedileship. He was
            elected after he had publicly declared that he would no
            longer practise as a clerk. The people, in electing him, showed their
            freedom from the old prejudices which had till then confined and oppressed
            them.
            
          
          Flavius rendered his thanks to the people not merely
            by words, but by the performance of a real service. He undertook, on his
            own responsibility, supported by Appius Claudius, to supplement in a
            measure the laws of the Twelve Tables, inasmuch as he published a legal
            calendar and a list of formulas which had to be used in the courts of
            law in civil cases. The publication of information which until now had
            intentionally been kept secret could not have, nor was it meant to have,
            the effect of rendering the counsel of lawyers superfluous in future.
            But nevertheless much was gained if the knowledge of law was made at
            last accessible to all, and remained no longer the monopoly of one class.
            Thus the translation of the Bible into the vernacular language has not
            made everyone a theologian, but it has broken the spiritual omnipotence of
            the clergy.
            
          
          A further mark of progress was the admission of
            plebeians to the priestly offices of augurs and pontifices by the Ogulnian law, 300 BC. This innovation was, indeed, as
            indicated above, not of great political importance. It concerned more the
            great plebeian families than the plebeians in general. But it was in some
            measure the ornamental finish of the newly constituted order in
            the state, the recognition of equality between all Roman citizens in
            the last recesses of privilege. Of the patrician offices there remained now
            none but that of the sacrificial king, those of the three high flamines and the Saliarian brethren—in which the old order was left untouched out of historic veneration
            for these honourable relics of antiquity—and the extraordinary office of
            interrex.
            
          
          The Roman citizens seemed now to have no materials
            left for internal struggles. Nevertheless, hardly ten or fifteen years
            elapsed in perfect peace. After the end of the third Samnite war, in the
            year 287, the old dissensions were renewed. The wound which had long
            been healed broke open again. We hear once more of an excess of debt,
            of an insurrection, of a secession of the plebs, and of new concessions,
            by which the worst was prevented and peace again restored. This fourth secession
            of the plebs, and the laws, connected therewith, of the dictator Hortensius, belong to the many mysteries of the
            internal history of Rome, of which we can hardly expect
            a satisfactory explanation. Still the attempt must be made, as far as
            our imperfect information will permit, to understand them.
            
          
          We must anticipate a little the foreign history of
            Rome, and connect our narrative with the victorious conclusion of the third
            Samnite war. The war had cost immense sacrifices, and it is quite
            conceivable that a considerable part of the people was in great distress. Now,
            however, there was a prospect of remedying this distress.
            Large tracts of land had been conquered, and were at the disposal of
            the Roman state for colonisation and division to impoverished citizens. An
            agrarian law was introduced by the plebeian consul, Manius Curius, the conqueror of the Samnites and the
            Sabines, the model of old Roman contentment and honesty. He proposed giving
            assignments of land to the citizens of seven jugera each. That he found great opposition is certain,4 but of the causes of
            this opposition we are not informed. Did the question turn on the
            selection of the land to be divided, or on the conditions of the proposed
            assignments of land, or, even as Zonaras hints, on an immediate
            liquidation of debts. We do not know for certain. Still we may perhaps
            venture to suppose that the question was, whether assignments of land with
            full right of property should be made in districts which the great
            land-owners wished to keep as state lands, in order by occupation to
            appropriate them to themselves. Whatever the proposal of Curius may have been, the senate and the nobility
            opposed the execution of the plan. By two previous laws, the
            Valerian-Horatian of the year 449 and the Publilian of the year 339, it
            was decided that the plebeian assembly of tribes should be permitted
            to exercise the right of legislation. But whether these laws, as probably
            was the case, were so limited by particular clauses that they were not
            applicable to the case in question, or whether the nobility tried to set
            them aside as antiquated, the opposition was strong that the radical
            measure of a formal secession was resorted to by the popular leaders in
            order to break it. The people retired to the Janiculus,
            and could only be induced by the danger of threatening war to consent to
            the proposals of the dictator Q. Hortensius. The
            condition of peace was a further confirmation or extension of the old
            laws, which placed the comitia of tribes on a par with the comitia
            of centuries in legislative matters.3 That is all that we know with
            certainty of the Hortensian law, and this is in
            no way sufficient to enable us to see distinctly the extent and the
            meaning of it, and especially to determine the relation in which it stood
            to the two earlier laws of similar import. We do not know either how the
            dispute about the agrarian law was settled, and we can only suppose that
            in this also the nobles
            
          
          The legislative omnipotence which, by the Hortensian law, was given or confirmed to the assembly of
            tribes, changed Rome, in point of form, into a pure democracy. The comitia centuriata, in which the citizens were divided into
            five classes and divisions of classes, according to property and age, and
            which therefore retained the principle of inequality and were in some respects
            aristocratically organised, had now only the election of consuls, praetors, and
            censors as their exclusive privilege. In all other matters the purely
            democratic comitia of tribes, where heads only were counted, and from
            which the patricians were even excluded, had concurrent authority. The
            tendency had been for a long time in favour of an increase of the power of
            the assembly of tribes. The election of the newly-established magistrates,
            with the exception of that of praetors and censors, was given to the
            tribes. The civil legislation seemed quite to have passed over to
            them, and even questions of foreign policy, involving war and peace,
            were regularly laid before the tribes. The cumbersome comitia of centuries,
            with all their troublesome apparatus of auspices, and their complicated
            divisions of seniors and juniors, of knights, musicians, smiths,
            and carpenters, seemed antiquated and useless for common convenience.
            The time for their transformation and adaptation to the altered circumstances
            was approaching. In the meantime the comitia of tribes developed an ever
            increasing activity. They were free, from those religious formalities from
            which the mind of the people turned away more and more, especially since
            they had become aware of the hypocrisy practised by the ruling class. The
            tribunes of the people, not burdened with arduous
            administrative functions, such especially as those which kept other
            officials away from the town, and now no longer called upon to render
            legal protection to the plebeians against patrician magistrates, had
            leisure, opportunity, and means, as it appears, completely to rule the republic
            through the comitia of tribes. How easy was it for them to propose and to
            carry laws for grants of land, for the reduction of debt and the distribution
            of money! Was it to he expected that the people would control themselves,
            and how could there be wanting demagogues ready to avail themselves
            of so favourable a state of things ? How was it that the republican
            liberties were not now already undermined by ambitious men, with the help
            of the tribunes of the people and the assembly of tribes? Yet the danger
            lay still far off. What might have been expected did not happen. The
            republican spirit was yet too strong; and the position of the republic
            with regard to foreign states required the co-operation of all parties.
            
          
          But more especially the Roman nobility governed as a
            compact body, and suffered no isolated opposition to show itself; they
            kept strict discipline among themselves, and, in spite of all democratic
            innovations, they were more than ever the real masters and rulers of the
            commonwealth. Rome was a complete aristocracy with democratic forms.
            The  Roman republic was practically governed by the senate,  which
            was composed of the representatives of the noble  houses. The popular
            assemblies, which had neither the right of initiative nor of free
            discussion, were only the machinery by which the nobility marked their
            measures with the legal stamp. It is in the nature of things that
            the population of a town cannot govern a large country. The small
            peasants and tradesmen of Rome had not the knowledge necessary for the
            regulation of public affairs, now that the state was so much extended. The
            professional politicians, who composed the senate, took the reins into
            their hands, and justified this usurpation by the wonderful wisdom,
            firmness, and circumspection with which they governed. They controlled the
            election of magistrates, and admitted no one easily of whom they were not
            perfectly sure. The magistrates so chosen they kept in
            strict obedience to their own will. Even the tribunes of the people
            bowed to the authority of the senate, and were from this time forward more and
            more the most important servants of the new government. Through them
            the senate had the sanction of the assemblies of the people at their
            disposal, and their right of intercession was a means always ready to overpower
            the resistance of any refractory magistrate. Thus unity of will was
            infused into the heterogeneous mass of authorities which seemed so
            admirably contrived to cause mutual hindrances and obstructions. The
            senate kept this position until the end of the republic. The time came at
            last, however, when it was compelled to abdicate its power. The empire
            became too large even for the senatorial government as it was organised in
            Rome. When the nobility could not resist the temptation to turn the
            power of government to their own advantage, monarchy stepped in, and
            transformed the freedom of the few, which had become a sham and a
            nuisance, into an equal slavery for all.
            
          
          
             
          
          CHAPTER XII.
                
          
          THE THIRD SAMNITE WAE, 208-290 B.C.
                
          
          
             
          
          The second Samnite war, which ended in 304 BC, had put
            an end for the time to plans of conquests in Campania, and even to the
            predatory invasions of the mountain tribes. The Romans and their allies, the neighbours
            of the Samnites, especially those in Campania and Apulia, had not fought
            the war for the conquest of Samnium. The policy of Rome did not yet
            contemplate the subjection of the Samnites. In the treaty of peace
            the independence of the Samnites was acknowledged. Nevertheless an extension
            of the Roman power took place indirectly at the expense of the mountaineers.
            The whole district on the Liris and Volturnus,
            where the Volscian and Ausonian nations lived, was withdrawn from their
            influence, and had to submit to the arrangements which Rome found it in her
            interest to make. The country was secured against future attacks by
            numerous colonies. A great part of the land changed hands. Roman
            citizens and Latins settled on it in great numbers. The towns that
            remained independent, or at least in the enjoyment of their own local
            self-government, were drawn more closely to Rome, as Roman municipia and
            allies, and furnished henceforth a part of the Roman army. Simultaneously
            with this increase of the colonies and the subject population, the
            state grew at its centre, as the tribes were increased from twenty-seven
            (332) to thirty-one (318), and stretched now over almost every part of
            ancient Latium. These thirty-one districts, together with the colonies
            and the dependent municipalities and prefectures, formed now the enlarged
            Roman state, a state which in size was already the largest in Italy, and which
            in centralised organisation and readiness for action surpassed, far more
            than in mere dimensions, all other Italian states.
            
          
          This Roman state had, moreover, a number of allies on
            whom, in case of a war, it might reckon with tolerable certainty. The
            Sabellian tribes of central Italy, the Marsians, Pelignians, Marrucinians,
            and Vestinians were, as before, friendly to Rome, as were also the
            Apulians and Lucanians, from their hatred of their neighbours,
            the Samnites. These peoples, it is true, were not at all times to be
            relied on. Their political institutions were shifting and irregular. They
            formed confederations, which were unable to resist the strain of a great
            war, and were swayed by the individual interests and views of the
            different cantons among the mountains, or the several towns in the Apulian
            plain, or the leaders of opposite parties. The Lucanians, above all the rest,
            were divided among themselves and uncertain in their resolution and
            action. It could not, of course, be expected of these people that they
            should hold the interest of Rome dearer than their own; and if
            Rome committed errors by leaving them exposed to the common enemy, or
            by treating them harshly, or calling upon them to make too great
            sacrifices, the natural consequence was, that they felt the protection of
            the Romans more burdensome than the enmity of the Samnites. Thus, in
            the course of the second Samnite war, there had arisen hostilities between
            Rome and her allies which the Roman annalists took advantage of, in order to be able to relate victories of the Romans
            over these nations.
            
          
          After the termination of the second Samnite war, in
            the year 304, these alliances were renewed, first with the Marsians, Pelignians,
            Marrucinians, and Vestinians, and a few years later with the Picentians, the Lucanians, and the Apulians. Thus
            Samnium was completely hemmed in, on the one side by Rome herself, and on
            the other side by her allies. The Romans had full liberty to complete that
            organisation of the state which was commenced by changing the Latin allies into
            Roman citizens, by extending the Roman tribes over Latium, by the
            establishment of colonies, dependent municipalities, and prefectures.
            In this direction the Romans now proceeded further. Immediately after the
            close of the war with the Samnites, the Aequians, the old obstinate
            enemies and tiresome neighbours, who had so often harassed and alarmed the
            Roman republic in its infancy, were subdued and quieted for ever. The
            town of Alba, in their country, near Late Fucinus, was
            changed into a Roman colony, and a strong garrison of 6,000 men was placed
            there. The town of Sora in the country of the Volscians, on the Liris,
            which had been temporarily in the possession of the Romans during the
            war, received a garrison of 4,000 Latin colonists. These
            colonies could not be founded without large confiscations of laud and
            spoliation of the former owners. It is therefore clear why the Aequians,
            in the year following, made a desperate attempt to destroy the colony of
            Alba. They remembered the time when by their attacks they were able to
            terrify even Rome, and probably they forgot the great changes which
            had taken place since. By this act they hastened their complete
            subjection. In spite of their obstinate resistance, their country was
            incorporated with Rome in the eyar following
            (300 BC), and two new Roman tribes were formed of it.
            
          
          The Volscian towns of Arpinum and Trebula received the Roman citizenship, without
            honorary rights (the civitas sine suffragio)—that
            is, they were made subject towns or municipia; the town of Frusino,
            in the country of the Hernicans, was punished by having a third of its
            land confiscated, because the inhabitants were charged with
            colonies, having excited the Hernicans to revolt. The beheading of
            the leaders of this alleged conspiracy ended this episode, and
            re-established peace in the small town of Frusino,
            of whose sad fate we only hear accidentally. Probably it was not the
            only place in which the Romans established peace and submission in that
            effectual but inhuman manner which was peculiarly their own. The next
            colony to be established was Carseoli, in the country of the Marsians,
            to which in 301 BC. no less than 4,000 colonists were sent. This
            foundation also called forth, like that of Alba, the opposition of those
            at whose expense and in whose country it was made. But the Marsians
            resisted in vain. They were subdued by the dictator M. Valerius Maximus, and their old alliance with Rome, it is said, was renewed;
            by which we are to understand that Rome, for the present, forbore to
            take from them more than the town and the district of Carseoli. The
            frontier of the republic was now sufficiently protected on the south and
            east by the chain of colonies, which extended from Campania, along
            the valley of the Liris, as far as the Anio, and
            which consisted of Cales, Suessa, Interamna, Fregellae, Sora, Alba, and Carseoli.
            In the north Sutrium and Nepete were still the only military strongholds, and between these towns
            and Carseoli the valley of the Tiber offered the easiest and most natural
            road for an advance upon Rome, should the Etruscans or the Umbrians be in
            a condition to undertake a war in that quarter. Hitherto it had not been
            found necessary to stop this approach to Rome by a fortified place, because the
            northern neighbours of Rome gave no cause for serious apprehension. They
            had not materially affected the war of Rome with Samnium, for the
            alleged exploits of Q. Fabius Maximus against the Etruscans
            and Umbrians, in the course of the second Samnite war, were, as we
            have seen, in reality of very small importance. If the Romans found it
            necessary now to erect a fortification on the northern frontier, the cause
            must be looked for in the movements of the Gauls, who,
            strengthened by reinforcements from beyond the Alps, now began again to
            harass northern Italy. Since the conquest and destruction of their town by
            the Gauls, the Romans entertained a deep-rooted terror of these impetuous
            barbarians.1 Nothing was so calculated to produce uneasiness and undignified
            anxiety, not only among the mass of the people but in the senate itself,
            generally the model of firmness and resolution, as the news of the
            approach of the Gauls. They had marched along the Tiber in the year
            of the battle of the Allia. It was therefore for
            the defence of this road that the Romans now took possession of the
            Umbrian town of Nequinum, which lay close to
            the river Nar, near its junction with the Tiber. This town, from
            henceforth called Narnia, impregnable by its situation on steep rocks, and
            almost surrounded by the Nar, became a Roman colony, and filled up the gap
            which till now had existed between Sutrium and Nepete on the one side, and Carseoli on the other.
            
          
          A further precautionary measure of the Romans against
            the dangers which threatened them from the Gauls was the keeping tip or
            the renewal of the good understanding with the Etruscan towns which formed
            the bulwark of Rome against the barbarians. Even during their first
            disastrous invasion, the Romans, it is said, had made an attempt
            to interpose on behalf of the town of Clusium.
            They now availed themselves of internal disturbances in Arretium to establish in that town a government entirely dependent on themselves. A
            civil war had broken out in this town, which led to the expulsion of the
            noble house of the Cilnii, and probably raised the democratic party to
            power. The Romans showed themselves here, as everywhere, the friends
            of the nobility, and sent out an army at the request of the expelled
            Cilnii to bring them back again. This was effected without much
            difficulty, and we may presume that the nobles, now in possession of
            the government of Arretium, had from this time
            forward a double reason for clinging to Rome, because they were safe
            only by Roman assistance against their internal enemies as well as against
            the attacks of the Gauls. This intervention in Arretium was, as Livy says, in some annals represented as a regular war of Rome
            with Etruria. The dictator M. Valerius Maximus
            is made the hero of this war. It is related with much detail how he
            repaired a fault of the master of the horse, how he defeated
            the Etruscans in great battles, and compelled them to accept a
            humiliating peace. The domestic annalists of the Valerians have
            undoubtedly enriched the history of Rome with this war, and they found
            ready credence with a public so ignorant and so incapable of critical
            discrimination as the Romans. Fortunately we learn from Livy that some of the
            annalists did not relate these mendacious stories.1 We owe these annalists our best thanks. Their silence enables us to
            clear away the fictions which render the Roman policy of that time
            completely incomprehensible and absurd. We may now maintain that the Roman
            senate was not guilty of the folly of undertaking a war with the Etruscans
            and Umbrians, in addition to that which threatened them from the
            Samnites and the Gauls, and moreover that the former two nations saw the
            necessity of seeking Roman protection against the greatest, danger to
            which they could be exposed, the danger of being extirpated, like their kinsmen
            in the north, by the savage barbarians of Gaul.
            
          
          Rome had thus made use of the six years of peace,
            when, in 298 BC, a new war threatened to break out with the Samnites. The
            cause was furnished by the Lucanians. This people was agitated by
            incessant internal dissensions; the democratic party were averse to the
            connexion with Rome, and sought among the Samnites a support
            against their political enemies. It was decidedly in the interest of
            the Romans to keep the Lucanians, as their allies, in a sort of dependence,
            and to allow no Samnite influence to supplant their own. They sent a
            message therefore to the Samnites, requesting them to desist from
            interference in Lucania. The Samnites declined to obey this
            arrogant injunction, which assumed a superiority they were in no way
            ready to concede, and the war broke out anew.
            
          
          The relative strength of the two belligerent states
            was in the year 298 very different from that which it had been thirty
            years before. Rome had during that time become indisputably the first
            power in Italy; the Samnites were internally weakened and cut off all
            round from their cognate races. Their attempts to make conquests
            in Campania, in the country of the Volscians, and in Apulia, had been
            frustrated, and these countries had come altogether into the possession or
            under the influence of Rome. The Samnites owed only to the wild mountains
            which they inhabited the preservation of their independence and the continued
            importance of their friendship or hostility. When we recollect how long the
            mountain tribes of the Caucasus defied the colossal power of Russia, how the
            mountains of Switzerland were strongholds of independence, we can
            understand that the rude inhabitants of the highlands of the Apennines, though
            often beaten, could make themselves again terrible. The loss of the
            pasturage on the Apulian plains and the devastations of the long
            wars compelled the Samnites more and more to live by plunder, and their
            predatory expeditions became a general grievance. The Romans therefore
            always found allies, ready under their guidance to keep off these
            troublesome neighbours.
            
          
          The first year of the third Samnite war, 298 BC, is of
            particular interest for the Roman history. In the epitaph of L. Cornelius
            Scipio, the consul of this year, which, was. found in Rome in the year
            1780, we possess a valuable, if not the oldest, document of the republic
            which has come down to posterity in the original. On this account
            alone the inscription deserves especial respect and attention ;
            at the same time it exhibits so fully the characteristics of
            the oldest family traditions, from which mostly the annalists have
            gleaned their facts, that we may pause for a moment to, examine the
            epitaph. Composed in the Saturnian verse— the rude Italian rhythm which
            was afterwards superseded by the refined and elaborate metres of the
            Greeks—the epitaph runs thus:—
            
          
          Cornelius Lucius Scipio Barbatus,
                
          
          A noble lather's offspring, a brave man and wise,
            
          
          Whose beauty was equalled only by his virtue, 
                
          
          Who among you was consul, censor, and aedile, 
                
          
          Took Taurasia and Cisauna in Samnium, 
                
          
          Subdued all Lucania, and carried away hostages.
                
          
          If we compare this eulogium with the historical
            narrative of Livy we meet with contradictions which appear irreconcilable.
            According to Livy, Scipio never commanded but in Etruria, where he fought a
            drawn battle in the with the Etruscans at Volaterrae,
            gaining great spoils but narrative. making no conquests. His colleague in
            the consulship, Cn. Fulvius, on the other hand,
            fought, according to Livy, with success against the Samnites at Bovianum. The
            towns of Taurasia and Cisauna are not mentioned, and are altogether unknown. Finally, Livy says nothing of a
            defeat of the Lucanians. It might seem, then, that we are compelled
            to pronounce the story of Livy to be erroneous, or the epitaph to be forged.
            Yet, on a closer examination, we find that there is in both a nucleus of
            historical truth, that in one point they mutually confirm one
            another, but that both suffer from the fundamental fault of the Roman
            annals—from boundless exaggerations and misrepresentations.
            
          
          The treaty of Rome with the Lucanians was renewed in
            the year 298 BC, when the latter, owing to the attacks of the Samnites,
            thought it advisable to call in the assistance of the Romans. On this occasion
            the Lucanians, as a pledge of their fidelity, sent a number of
            hostages to Rome—a precautionary measure which the Romans, knowing
            the inconstancy of the Lucanian character, from their experience in former
            wars, found quite necessary. This took place during the consulship of L.
            Cornelius Scipio Barbatus, and he was himself probably intrusted with
            receiving the hostages. So far the annalistic accounts of Livy and
            Dionysius agree with the epitaph of Scipio. But the family vanity of the Scipios was not satisfied with such an insignificant
            part played by L. Cornelius. With the usual and unscrupulous exaggeration
            of Roman family chroniclers, a war and the subjection of the whole of Lucania
            were premised as preliminary steps to the reception of hostages. For could it be
            supposed that Rome should conclude a treaty of peace with a foreign nation
            unless she had first defeated them? That such an exaggeration ’is first found
            in a family document is quite natural, and it is almost to be wondered at
            that the fable of the entire subjection of the Lucanians was not received into
            the current history of the nation compiled from such materials.
            This would certainly have been done if, there had not been
            in existence in the time of the third Samnite war some independent
            historical records, which to some extent controlled the licence of the
            family panegyrists.
            
          
          The conquest of Taurasia and Cisauna in Samnium, which is mentioned in the
            epitaph, may be received as historical, although Livy does not refer to
            it; but these places may have been very small and insignificant,
            as they are not further mentioned and their locality cannot be
            determined.
            
          
          It is strange that the epitaph of Scipio says nothing
            of his alleged campaign in Etruria, which Livy dwells upon at length, and in
            which a family eulogist would surely have found materials for ample praise. We
            are justified by this discreet silence in supposing that the whole of
            that Etruscan campaign is a fiction, and to this conclusion we are
            led by general considerations. The Etruscans and the Umbrians were, by
            their geographical situation, exposed to the first attacks of the Gauls,
            and had no choice but to look to Rome for assistance. They always did this when
            an invasion of the Gauls was expected. Accordingly we cannot conceive any
            of the Etruscan and Umbrian wars to have been possible. The alleged
            campaign of Scipio is one of these. It is moreover condemned as
            unhistorical by the character of the narrative itself. Livy describes a
            number of warlike operations which have neither meaning nor object nor
            result, except that in the end the Romans make much booty. He relates
            that the Etruscans had intended to break the peace with Rome, but
            were prevented by an attack of the Gauls from carrying out this intention.
            The Gauls, then, as is further related, were persuaded by money to desist
            from attacking Etruria, but would not consent to march upon Rome. Now
            the Etruscans, having narrowly escaped a war with the Gauls, began,
            without provocation, a war with Rome, and this war ended without any
            result. If such Wonderful vagaries were recorded by trustworthy contemporary
            witnesses, we should accept them with astonishment and try to understand
            them; but the evidence which we possess is not of a character to bear down
            the doubts suggested by the narrative; and even if the epitaph of Scipio,
            instead of being silent on the Etruscan war, were to agree with Livy’s
            account, we should feel justified in doubting its truth.
            
          
          The great migration of the Celts, which in the first
            half of the third century before Christ threatened the civilised countries of antiquity
            on the Mediterranean Sea, and which terminated in the foundation of the
            Galatian State in Asia Minor, affected Italy also, and the Gauls actually
            took a part in the wars of the native populations. The news of the
            approach of new Gallic hordes had already occasioned some anxiety in Rome,
            and, as we have supposed, given cause for the establishment of the colony
            of Narnia. But principally the Umbrians and Etruscans were
            threatened by the invaders. The Samnites had, on account of their geographical
            position, their wild mountains, and their poverty, nothing to fear from
            the Gauls—on the contrary much to hope, if they could only ally themselves
            with them against Rome. It is not unlikely that just now
            the threatened invasion of the Gauls induced the Samnites to try
            again the fortune of war, for in a division of the Roman forces lay their
            only hope of success. For this purpose they sent, in the third year of the
            war, an army to Umbria, under Gellius Egnatius, to join the Gauls. The Romans, it seems,
            turned their attention also towards the north, and the war in Samnium was
            carried on with but little energy, so that in 396 the Samnites were
            able to undertake another plundering expedition into Campania, and
            the Romans established two colonies, Sinuessa and Minturnae, for the protection of this country. The consul Appius
            Claudius was sent to Etruria in the year 296 but was not very successful, until
            his colleague L. Volumnius came to his assistance.
            The danger became more and more serious, and for the year 295. the first
            general of the time, Q. Fabius Maximus Rullianus, was
            elected consul. He requested the people to give him as colleague the
            plebeian P. Decius Mus. All preparations were now made which seemed
            required to meet the coming danger. The senate ordered the courts of
            law to be closed. Troops were levied, freedmen and freeborn Homans, old
            men as well as young, were called to arms. This terror was probably caused
            by a most disastrous calamity which had overtaken L. Cornelius Scipio
            Barbatus, then propraetor in Etruria, and which
            had awakened afresh the old terror of the Gauls. A whole legion had
            been surprised and annihilated by the barbarians, so that, according to
            some reports, not one man escaped who could have brought the intelligence,
            and the fact was known only by the Gallic horsemen galloping up to
            the consuls’ army, carrying on their lances the heads of
            their enemies, and shouting songs of triumph.
            
          
          The consuls Fabius and Decius marched against the
            enemy. They had under their command two consular armies, that is, four
            legions and a still greater number of allies, among whom one thousand Campanian
            horsemen are mentioned. One legion of volunteers was quickly raised by Fabius,
            probably in the place of that which was annihilated under Scipio. Besides these
            there was a third army as a reserve, under the proprietor Cn. Fulvius, at Falerii, and a fourth covered Rome on the
            Etruscan bank of the Tiber. Rome had never before set such numerous armies on
            foot; but the danger was great, for, after the defeat of Scipio, the day
            of the Allia—the day so quickly followed by the
            devastation of the town—was present to the imagination of every Roman. In
            times of excitement and danger there is seldom a lack of miracles: nor was
            there any now. Blood, honey, and milk flowed from the altar of
            the Capitoline Jupiter, and a bronze statue of the goddess of war on
            the Forum sprang from the pedestal on to the ground. The people turned to
            the Etruscan soothsayers for comfort, and to the gods for help. The senate
            set apart two days for supplication and prayer, and supplied, as Livy
            says, at the public cost, wine and incense for the sacrifices.
            On this occasion, the ancient pride of the patrician matrons showed itself
            once more. While their husbands and sons were side by side in the field with
            their plebeian comrades, they could not bring themselves to pray with
            plebeian women in the temple of the goddess of chastity. The plebeian
            matrons, excluded from the patrician temple of chastity, established a
            sanctuary of their own, and thus the old fire of discord continued to
            smoulder in the hearts of the women and on the altars of the gods.
            
          
          The Roman army did not wait for the march of the Gauls
            upon Rome. It crossed the Apennines and ventured into countries which no Roman
            soldier yet had trod. Without the assistance of the allied Umbrian
            towns, in whose territory the passes were, the Romans could not have
            hazarded such a bold march, especially after the defeat of Scipio. At Sentinum, on the eastern slope of the Apennines, near
            to the pass by which afterwards the Via Flaminia crossed the mountains,
            they met the united forces of the Gauls and the Samnites. A description of
            the battle such as that given by Livy is only a play of the fancy. We
            will not reproduce it. But one part of Livy’s description seems to deserve
            credit. He speaks of the Gallic war-chariots, which the Romans encountered
            here for the first time, and which caused great consternation.
            The consul Decius died in the battle, it is said, like his father
            in the battle near Mount Vesuvius, a voluntary death, having devoted
            himself with the hostile army to the gods of earth and of the grave. The
            enemy were completely beaten, their army destroyed, and the war with the
            Gauls terminated at one blow. It was a great deliverance. Rome breathed afresh,
            as it did again in a later age after the victory of Marius over the Cimbrians and Teutons. For the first time the dreaded
            enemies were beaten in the field, and so beaten that they relinquished, at
            least for the time, every idea of continuing the war. Ten years passed before
            the barbarians had so far regained strength as to venture on another
            invasion of the centre of Italy. The Romans felt themselves to be quite a
            match for their other opponents, their old Italian neighbours and accustomed
            enemies, and now, after the defeat of these foreign invaders,
            they might entertain the hope of soon bringing the Samnite war to a
            close.
            
          
          While the Roman armies were fighting the Gauls and
            their Samnite allies in Umbria and Etruria, they had not only recalled
            their troops from Samnium, but had also left their colonies and allies without
            sufficient protection. The Samnites did not fail to avail themselves of
            this opportunity. They made inroads into Campania, and laid waste the
            fruitful districts on the Volturnus. But they
            did not confine themselves to plundering. They tried to get possession of
            the forts which the Romans had built all along their frontier. In the west
            they besieged Interamna on the Liris, and in the
            south-east the important colony of Luceria, which commanded the
            Apulian plains. It is evident that the, diversion of the Gauls
            had benefited them, and that they had not suffered much by the battle
            of Sentinum, in which only a small number
            of Samnite troops can have been engaged. It was fortunate for Rome
            that the war in the north ended so quickly and decisively. The consuls of
            the following year, 294, L. Postumius Megellus and M. Atilius Regulus, could now both turn
            their attention to the scene of war in the south. But fortune did not
            favour them. From the confessions of Livy we see clearly that the Romans
            were more than once in great distress. The accounts of the several annalists differed in many particulars. But, according
            to Livy, all were agreed in this, that the Romans, in their attempt
            to deliver Luceria, suffered a decided repulse, and that the total
            destruction of the army was warded off only with the greatest difficulty.
            Luceria, it is true, seems not to have fallen into the power of the
            Samnites, but of more than this the Romans could not boast in this year.
            Yet the annalists related the conquest of some places in Samnium. In Livy’s
            account every disaster is compensated by victories, and one of the consuls
            can actually be spared in Sanmium, marches with
            his army to Etruria, defeats the Etruscans, and compels Volsinii, Perusia, and Arretium to sue for peace. The inevitable triumphs are
            not wanting. According to the Capitoline Fasti—the most mendacious documents of
            Roman history—both consuls triumphed; according to Livy, Postumius triumphed, but not Atilius; according to Claudius Quadrigarius,
            it was just the other way—Postumius did not
            triumph, but Atilius; according to Fabius, neither the one nor the other
            triumphed, and this testimony of the old annalists seems alone to
            deserve credit; We may be sure that the year 294 was, on the whole,
            not favourable for the Romans, that they sustained much loss in the field,
            but that the Samnites were not in a condition to take the Roman fortresses
            and to attack the Roman territory.
            
          
          This result is confirmed by the great exertions which
            both parties in the following year found it necessary to make. At Interamna, on the Liris, which had been sacked and
            plundered by the Samnites, a Roman legion was stationed, in order to
            protect those parts from new attacks. Both consuls of the year 298, L.
            Papirius Cursor, the son of the Papirius so often mentioned in the
            second Samnite war, and Sp. Carvilius, conducted
            the war in Samnium, conquered the Samnites in a great battle at Aquilonia (situation unknown), took many fortresses,
            and laid the country waste. The reports of their exploits, especially
            those of Papirius, are of the kind which might lead us to fancy that the war
            must practically have come to an end. But to our surprise we hear not only
            that at the close of the campaign the legions of Papirius wintered
            in the neighbourhood of Vescia, to protect
            Campania, but that the Samnites had in the following year an
            undisputed superiority over the Romans. We must therefore entertain
            serious doubts with regard to the victories of Papirius, and we suspect
            that the domestic annals of the Papirians have
            done much to extol and to exaggerate the victories of the Roman arms and
            the heroic deeds of their own family. At the very outset, a striking
            family likeness is observable between the story of L. Papirius
            Cursor’s victory and that of his father in the second Samnite war,
            309 BC. In each of these years the Samnites make extraordinary
            preparations, and, contrary to their usual habits, take refuge in
            religious fanaticism. In both eases a consecrated body of warriors is
            chosen, distinguished from the rest of the army by a peculiar dress, and
            sworn with the most solemn oaths to conquer or to die. In both accounts
            the Samnites, whom we can only imagine to have been poor mountaineers, are
            represented as covered with gold and silver. The triumphs of the two Papirii are distinguished by the splendour of
            the spoils. In the first case the Forum is hung with gold and silver
            shields; the younger Papirius decorates not only the temple of Quirinus
            and the Forum, but distributes the spoils also to the allies and to the
            colonies, to ornament their temples.
            
          
          In spite of the losses which it is reported that the
            Samnites suffered in the year 293, they were neither exhausted nor
            discouraged. They appeared, on the contrary, in the new campaign, 292 BC,
            again decidedly to have the advantage. The newly elected consul, Q. Fabius
            Maximus Gurges, the son of the chief hero of the
            war, suffered a reverse in which the Romans lost 3,000 dead and
            many wounded. The numbers of dead and wounded which are reported in
            these battles are of no historical value, but a confession of this kind
            shows at least that the Romans were decidedly beaten. The disaster,
            however, is said to have been repaired very soon by a victory over the
            Samnites; the old Q. Fabius, the consul’s father, requested to serve under
            his son as legate, and now the Samnites were defeated. The consul
            triumphed; and before his triumphal car walked in chains the victor of Caudium,
            the high-minded C. Pontius, whom the Romans, destitute of all magnanimity
            and humanity, delivered up to death by the hand of the executioner. But
            the Samnites were not yet broken to the yoke. They were only driven back
            into their mountains by the preponderance of Roman strength. Their resistance
            was at length overcome in ‘great battles’, by M. Curius Dentatus, the consul of the year 290, as
            we learn from the only authority extant, the meagre abridgment of
            Eutropius, and from the short argument of the lost eleventh book of Livy.
            But after all they concluded an honourable peace, which acknowledged their
            independence.
            
          
          The third Samnite war appears, therefore, even in the
            Roman reports, which are alone handed down to us, by no means as an
            unbroken series of victories on the part of the Romans. On the contrary,
            it almost seems that the Romans, in spite of repeated defeats in the
            field, only maintained on the whole the upper hand through their greater
            perseverance, their political and diplomatic superiority over the Samnites, and
            through the greater inherent strength of their state, which, as we have
            said before, was the most powerful in Italy at that time; and, like
            the wars with Pyrrhus, with the Carthaginians, the Gauls, the
            Spaniards, and the Lusitanians, the third war with Samnium plainly shows
            that the Roman constitution, with its rapid change of military commanders
            elected by popular suffrage, was labouring under disadvantages, scarcely
            outweighed by the thorough military training, the calm heroism, and the
            common obligation of the citizens to serve in the army.
            
          
          The Romans concluded peace without having completely
            defeated the Samnites. Samnium retained even now its independence. No Roman colony
            was established in the country of the Samnites, no portion of it was taken from
            them. Still the success of the Roman policy was great. It was proved now that
            the Samnites were unable to shake the republic. These brave mountaineers were
            exhausted at last. From this time the Samnites did not venture again to take up
            the struggle against Rome with their own unaided strength. Their only hope
            for the future was, by uniting themselves to some of Rome’s powerful
            enemies, to avenge themselves on the hated town which had
            stopped them in their progress, and had snatched Campania from their
            grasp. Among the mercenaries of Pyrrhus, among the allies of Hannibal, and
            even in the civil war in their dying struggle with the iron Sulla, they
            showed even to their last breath their old courage and
            inextinguishable hatred of Rome.
            
          
          As after the end of the second Samnite war, so now,
            the senate was intent on securing by Roman colonies the ground that had been
            gained. On the borders of Samnium, Apulia, and Lucania, the colony of Venusia was established, and the extraordinarily large
            number of 20,000 colonists sent there. Thus they had a stronghold in
            the midst of former enemies and doubtful friends; its position in the
            neighbourhood of Tarentum pointed to the direction from which the next
            war-storm would burst over Italy. ’
            
          
          The long wars with Samnium were followed by the
            subjection of the Sabines. These had been quiet and gibing hardly
            mentioned for a century and a half. What their policy had been during the
            Samnite wars is nowhere stated. They were certainly not among the enemies
            of Rome; for we should in that case have heard of Roman victories over
            them. Most probably they were, like the Marsians, Apulians, and Lucanians,
            allied with Rome, though their services are never mentioned. They were now
            made Roman citizens without the full franchise, i.e. subjects of Rome,
            preparatory to their reception into the tribes and to the enjoyment of all
            the rights of Roman citizens.
            
          
          Our knowledge of the last three years of the war and
            of the subsequent events, is extremely scanty, for the tenth book of Livy
            breaks off with the year 292, and as the whole of the second decade,
            containing books eleven to twenty-one, is lost, we are deprived for the
            time from 292 to 218 of the guide who has accompanied us far in doubtful
            and intricate paths. We begin to feel his real worth at a time when his
            history is wanting. It is true he has often disappointed our expectations.
            He has omitted conscientiously to collect, compare, and sift the materials for
            the ancient history of Rome, which were accessible to him in abundant
            stores. He did not give himself the trouble to solve doubts
            and remove difficulties, even where it was possible for him to do so.
            Partly owing to indifference for historical accuracy in the older parts of
            his work, and partly because he preferred to occupy himself with
            narratives of' dramatic effect and with the display of rhetorical skill,
            he is silent as to the contradictions that present themselves,
            and passes quickly over wide gaps. The spirit of the ancient times of
            the Roman people is beyond his grasp. His feelings and opinions are those
            of the declining republic. These he applies to the old time. That which
            has disappeared or faded away he cannot conjure up and invest with
            new life. He is moreover a partisan and a Roman patriot. He stands always
            on the side of the aristocratic party, and has nothing but blame for the wicked
            tribunes and the despicable, selfish crowd. Towards the enemies of Rome he
            is heartless and unjust, while he loses no opportunity of praising Roman
            virtue. The degeneracy of his contemporaries made him an enthusiast for
            the old heroes, and guides his pen when he paints antiquity in the golden
            light of bygone days. But we take Livy with all his faults, for with them he
            gives us rich historical materials which without him would have been
            entirely lost to us. He worked with perseverance, love, and enthusiasm. He
            neither falsified nor misrepresented anything knowingly, Where he has erred, it
            has been from want of observation, critical discrimination,
            and trustworthy materials. These faults become of less and less
            consequence the further he leaves the legendary times behind and
            approaches those of contemporary witnesses. We should only learn fully to
            appreciate his worth if an unhoped-for piece of good fortune could restore
            to us the one hundred and seven lost books of the grandest
            historical work of Roman antiquity.
            
          
          CHAPTER XIII.
                
          
          EXTERNAL HISTORY TILL TARENTINE WAB, 290-282 B.C.
                
          
          
             
          
          After the decisive overthrow which the Gauls suffered at Sentinum, 293 BC, they were quiet for ten years. But
            in the year 285 the Senonian Gauls invaded Etruria again, and
            besieged Arretium, which was in friendly relations to
            Rome. The Romans came to the assistance of the Arretines,
            but were completely overthrown, and lost 13,000 men, including the praetor
            L. Cecilius Metellus and
            seven military tribunes. The remainder of the army were made prisoners.
            This defeat—one of the most disastrous in the older Roman history—was
            calculated to revive the ancient terror of the northern barbarians. It was
            scarcely a consolation for the Romans  who suffered such blows, that in this school of war they were
            trained into soldiers fit to encounter the enemies who were soon to try
            their metal. The detailed account of these events is unfortunately lost
            with Livy's books. Otherwise we should have heard what impression
            the fearful news created in Rome, and how it called forth not only
            pain and grief, but at the same time the determination to defy and resist the
            enemy. Above all things new legions were levied, and it was then
            determined to send an embassy to the Gauls to negotiate for the release of
            the prisoners. But the intoxication of victory had
            completely maddened Britomaris, the savage
            chieftain of the Gauls. Reckless of the law of nations, he caused the
            ambassadors to be put to death, as an atoning sacrifice to his father, who
            had fallen in the last battle. This inhuman deed met with an inhuman
            punishment. The new Roman army, under the consul P. Cornelius Dolabella, entered
            the country of the Senonians to carry on a war
            of extermination. The whole race of the Senonian Gauls was destroyed, the
            men were put to death, the women and children became slaves, the country was
            declared public land of Rome, and a colony of Roman citizens established
            in Sena, to people the devastated country and to
            prevent for all future time a new settlement of Gauls (285 B.C.).
            
          
          Besides Sena, the colonies
            of Castrum and Hatria were founded on the coast of
            the Adriatic, and thus, for the first time, a firm footing was obtained on
            that side of the peninsula which looked towards Greece. The intention
            of the Romans was plain. From defence they had proceeded to attack. The
            Apennines had been crossed. Three Roman fortresses had been established on
            the other side. The country of the Gauls in Italy lay open before
            them. It was necessary for them to consider how they would oppose the
            further encroachments of Rome. The Boians, a
            race of Gauls dwelling between the Apennines and the Po, tried once more
            the fortune of war. Reinforced by the remnants of the Senonians,
            and by bands of Etruscans, who probably belonged to the democratic
            party hostile to Rome, they crossed the Apennines, but were defeated near
            the Tiber, on the Vadimonian Lake, and a second
            time at Populonia, so decisively that they
            relinquished all hope of success for the future, and concluded peace with
            the Romans, whereby the latter gained liberty to meet the dangers
            threatening from the south of the peninsula.
            
          
          It is a very important question which side the
            Etruscans took in these wars of the Gauls against Rome. In the received account
            the Etruscans are the ancient hereditary enemies of Rome; it is they who
            call in the Gauls to make common cause with them. How mistaken this view
            is with regard to similar events in the third Samnite war we have already seen.
            It is possible that isolated bands of Etruscans, driven from their homes,
            joined the Gauls. Political parties have seldom shrunk from making common
            cause with the enemies of their country, and we have many indications of
            violent internal struggles in the Etruscan towns, which led to the
            interference of Gauls or Romans. The first invasion of the Gauls in the
            year 391 was occasioned, according to the legend, by a plebeian of Clusium, Who, finding no protection in the laws
            against patrician violence, tempted the Gauls to cross the Alps
            by making them acquainted with the productions of his fertile
            country, especially with the southern wines. This story is of course
            invented, but the invention presupposes a state of things favourable to
            the interference of foreigners. Such was also the case in Arretium, where the ruling house of the Cilnians, shortly before the third Samnite war, 301 BC,
            being expelled by the people, sought and found help with the Romans. The Romans
            were at all times the friends of the aristocratic party in the
            Italian states, and were prepared to draw political advantages out of
            this friendship. Thus the popular party were driven to join the enemies of
            Rome, and therefore in every collision between Romans and Gauls in that
            country, Etruscans were ranged against Etruscans in the ranks of foreign
            armies. The state of things in Etruria, and the relation of political
            parties there to Rome, are illustrated more especially by the events which
            took place in Volsinii, a town that may be
            considered to have been about this time the head of the Etruscan
            confederation. The events to which we refer, it is true, belong to a
            somewhat later period, the year 265 BC, twenty years after the battle of Arretium, and only one year before the outbreak of the
            first Punic war; but the state of things in Volsinii which called them forth is clearly of a much older date, and they were
            evidently not isolated or exceptional phenomena, but were only indications
            of the development which for a long time had been going forward in the
            political life of the Etruscan states.
            
          
          After long internal struggles in Volsinii a revolution broke out in the year 265. The nobles lost all share in the
            government, which they had obstinately refused to share with the
            commonalty. A democratic government was established, and it is very likely
            that the revolution was carried out with much severity and cruelty.
            The lower class of people in Etruria were no doubt incapable of the
            moderation of the Roman plebs, and the Lucumones or
            nobles had not the political wisdom of the Roman patricians. The old
            contrast between masters and serfs had remained, and had lost nothing in
            the course of time in bitterness and harshness. Hence the revolution,
            when it came at last, was violent, although the descriptions of it
            given by the Roman historians are manifestly great exaggerations. It is
            represented by the moralising writers of the later time as a consequence
            of the extreme luxury and dissoluteness of the Volsinians.
            The citizens, becoming effeminate and weak, allowed the power to
            be wrested out of their hands by their own slaves, who, after having
            gained admittance into the senate and to the public offices, seized the
            whole power of the state, and retaliated upon the nobles by all sorts of
            exactions, spoliations, and cruelties. They put themselves in
            possession of the property of the rich by compelling them to
            make them their heirs, they forbad the social gatherings of
            the free-born citizens, married their daughters, committed adultery
            with impunity, and violated the honour of every noble bride. It is not
            difficult to recognise in this caricature the real features of the Volsinian revolution, and to see that its course was not
            unlike the political development in Rome. The changing of the original slaves
            into freedmen, into clients and citizens with an inferior
            franchise without any share in the government and legislation;
            then the admission of these to the senate, to the public offices, and
            to all the privileges of the old citizens; the granting of the right of
            intermarriage, with which the right of inheritance was connected; the
            limitation of the patrician assemblies and clubs,—all these are steps in
            the development of plebeian rights with which we are sufficiently acquainted
            in the internal history of Rome. The nobles of Volsinii would not abide, unfortunately, by the results of their internal
            revolution, but sought to make themselves masters of their hated opponents
            by foreign aid. They secretly sent an embassy to Rome, to bring about the
            intervention of the Roman government in their favour. The conspirators, on
            their return to Volsinii, were seized, tortured, and
            executed, together with the chief men of the aristocratic party. A Roman
            army now advanced before the unhappy town. Sanguinary combats took place.
            A fortified town like Volsinii, defended by men who
            were driven to despair and doomed to die, could not be taken at
            the first onset. The Roman consul, Q. Fabius Gorges, was killed. M. Valerius Flaccus followed him in
            the command, blockaded the town, and reduced it at last by hunger.
            A bloody sentence was now passed on the leaders of the popular party.
            In this fatal revolutionary war the venerable and wealthy town of Volsinii perished. It was sacked and destroyed; the
            democratic party was annihilated, the wretched remnants of the nobility
            were restored to power over the ruins of their native town. Volsinii never rose from the ashes. A new town was built in
            the neighbourhood, in which the aristocratic party had the satisfaction of
            establishing a government to their liking. Thus dealt the Romans with a
            friendly town which had sought their help in her domestic troubles. The
            intervention in the civil war and the destruction of Volsinii were extolled in Rome as a victory over Etruria. Triumphs were celebrated,
            and innumerable works of art and rich spoils, which, in the lapse of ages,
            had been collected in the metropolis of Etruscan art and civilisation,
            were carried off ta adorn the Forum and the Capitol.
            
          
          If at this time the Gauls had been in a position
            permitting them to oppose the Romans, they would most assuredly have befriended
            the oppressed popular party in Volsinii, but
            after their defeat at the Vadimonian Lake, they
            kept quiet for forty-five years. This was the period during which swarms
            of Gauls overran Macedonia and Greece. Rome knew how to make use of this
            respite, by overthrowing one of the now useless bulwarks
            against which, in former years, the Gallic onsets had been broken.
            
          
          The Romans succeeded in the destruction of Volsinii and in the subjection of Falerii, which took place
            in the year 292 BC, without any attempt on the part of the other Etruscan towns
            to oppose their aggression. The Etruscans exhibited now the same
            indifference to the fate of their countrymen as a hundred and thirty years
            earlier when Veii was attacked, and, after a siege of ten years, destroyed
            by the Romans. The warlike spirit of this people had evidently fled. They
            lived now only for sensual pleasures. For a period of nearly two hundred
            years history has next to nothing to relate of them. Their pacific
            relations to Rome remained unbroken, and this enabled them to practise the arts
            of peace, to cultivate their land like a garden, and to create innumerable
            works of art, which attest their superior talent and great wealth.
            They joined in no conspiracy against Rome with the peoples of southern
            Italy, with the Samnites, the Lucanians, the Tarentines, or with Pyrrhus.
            When Pyrrhus appeared in the neighbourhood of Rome, after his victory
            at Heraclea, and hoped to find the Etruscans willing to join in a war
            against Rome, all was tranquil in the whole of Etruria. Rome was quite
            safe on this side, and could direct all her energies to the south.
            
          
          The strength of the Samnites had been broken in the
            third war. They could no longer hope to oppose the extension of the Roman
            power in the southern districts of the peninsula. The establishment of the
            colony of Venusia was the first step by which
            Rome prepared her lasting dominion over that district. The turn was now come
            for the Greek towns on the coast, which till now had taken no part in
            the wars of the Romans and the Italians, and who, conscious of their own
            weakness, entertained the hope of prolonging their own independence
            through the internal struggles of the Italian nations. As soon, however,
            as a decided superiority of one or the other of the
            belligerent powers was established, it became clear that the independence
            of the Greek towns was gone. There had been a time when they might have
            hoped to Hellenise Italy. They could have accomplished this object if they
            had been united, and prepared to sacrifice a portion of their
            local independence for the common good. That time was past. They had
            now no choice but to be absorbed by the natives of Italy. This was the unavoidable
            consequence of their mutual jealousy and their murderous wars among
            themselves.
            
          
          Thurii was the first Greek town which was drawn towards Rome. Hard-pressed by the
            Lucanians, who were in the habit of breaking into the wealthy Greek
            settlements as the animals of the forest invade the fields and the flocks
            of man, the people of Thurii applied to Rome for
            help.
            
          
          The Lucanians had rendered much important service to
            the Romans in the third Samnite war. They probably thought themselves
            justified, after the peace with the Samnites, in paying themselves, by laying
            under contribution Greek cities which were at the same time wealthy and
            unable to make a stout resistance. Perhaps they contemplated even the
            conquest and lasting possession of Thurii. They
            had just seen a Greek town seized by countrymen of their own, and were no doubt
            eager to follow such a shining example. The Sabellian mercenaries
            who had served in Sicily under Agathocles had surprised the Greek
            town of Messana in Sicily, had massacred all
            the men capable of bearing arms, and lived now in abundance and
            luxury. The Romans could not allow a similar capture of an Italian town by
            a warlike people like the Lucanians, and so they had no hesitation in
            declaring war against their old allies the Lucanians, and espousing
            the cause of the Thurinians. In this war with
            the Lucanians, as might be expected, Samnites and Bruttians took a part. Caius Fabricius gained great
            victories, raised the siege of Thurii, and,
            after placing a garrison there, returned laden with spoils to Rome.
            
          
          The success of the Romans, however, was not confined
            to the military occupation of Thurii. Locri, Croton, and hegium received Roman garrisons. All of the most power important Greek towns
            along the coast were thus in the power of Rome, with the exception of Tarentum.
            The possession of this town would have completed the military supremacy of Rome over southern Italy, and it seemed now a natural and
              legitimate object of the Roman policy, to add this keystone to the edifice.
              Tarentum was doomed ; hut, before it fell, events took place calculated to test
              to the uttermost the courage and energy, the perseverance and self-devotion, of
              the Roman people
                
              
          
             
          
          
             
          
          CHAPTER XIV
                
          
          THE WAR WITH TARENTUM AND PHYRRUS, 282-272 B.C.
                
          
          
             
          
          After the decline of Croton and the destruction of
            Sybaris, Tarentum was decidedly the most flourishing and the most powerful
            town in Magna Gracia. It was originally a
            Spartan colony, but had, like the other Greek towns in Italy, received in
            course of time a very mixed population, embracing also native Italians.
            The primitive aristocratic constitution had given place to a democracy, when a
            great number of the nobles had fallen in a bloody engagement with the
            neighbouring Iapygians. The constitution of
            Tarentum was, however, by no means a licentious or unreasonable democracy,
            as it is represented by the flatterers of the Romans. Aristotle speaks of
            it approvingly. On the whole, the Tarentines have not deserved the bad
            name they bear. Their history is perhaps the most creditable among all the
            Greek settlements in Italy and Sicily. If they were not so conspicuous for
            military virtues and brilliant exploits as the Syracusans, they were at
            least not exposed to the same political calamities, and were not always tossed
            about between tyranny and anarchy. They seem on the whole to have
            proceeded calmly and quietly in the regulation of their
            internal affairs, although among them, as in all free states,
            but especially in the Greek city republics, the struggle between an
            aristocratic and a democratic party was the mainspring of political life. We
            hear of no bloody collision of parties in Tarentum, which may perhaps he
            accounted for by the undisputed dominion of the democracy. That
            the Tarentines took an active part in the intellectual life of
            the Greek people they could prove by pointing to their fellow citizen
            Archytas, who so far enjoyed their confidence that he was intrusted for
            years with a leading influence in the state. Nor is it to be doubted that
            in this rich and flourishing commercial town, the fine arts and
            literature found a fruitful soil. The situation of Tarentum
            was extremely favourable. A narrow tongue of land, which in the
            northern comer of the gulf extended from east to west, and on its western
            extremity nearly touched the opposite coast, formed a safe and almost
            dock-like harbour, secure against all storms from the sea, while the
            open roadstead outside offered good anchorage. At the entrance of the
            inner harbour was a hill, on which the citadel rose as on an island. The
            town covered the narrow tongue of land between the inner and the outer
            harbour, and was so built that the cross streets led to the water
            on each side. No single town in Magna Graecia had a more favourable
            position for navigation and commerce. In addition to this, the sea in
            those parts was full of fish, and thus furnished a great portion of the
            food of the people. The districts round Tarentum were
            excellent pasture and arable land. The diligence and skill of the
            Tarentines knew how to turn these natural gifts to their utmost advantage.
            To their extensive commerce they joined an important manufacturing
            industry, and Tarentine textile fabrics and dyed stuffs enjoyed a great reputation.
            
          
          The foreign policy of the Tarentines appears to have
            been on the whole peaceable. They could not, of course, avoid all
            conflicts with their neighbours, especially with the Thurinians,
            but we find no trace of their having ambitious intentions with regard to the
            extension of their dominions. Nevertheless they did not give themselves
            up, as has been said of them, to indolent luxury. They knew how to
            maintain their position against the rapacious Lucanians and Messapians, as also against the far more dangerous
            tyrants of Syracuse, who visited so many Italian towns with fire and
            sword. It is said that the Tarentines at the time of their prosperity brought
            an army of 20,000 men into the field. In addition to this they had a
            respectable fleet, and if they did not claim to rule the sea, they were at
            least in a position to protect their own commerce and their town, which
            was impregnable so long as the harbour was open. Yet the continually repeated
            attacks of the Italians sorely tried Tarentum at last. Exposed to the
            harassing depredations of the mountaineers, agriculture became more and
            more precarious. It was not possible to defend effectually the whole
            territory, and to deprive trade and industry of thousands of hands which
            would have been necessary to keep the enemy everywhere in check. Hence the
            Tarentines called first the Spartan king Archidamus, then the Molossian
            prince Alexander, and at last Cleonymus of Sparta, to fight for them
            against the Italians.
            
          
          Thus the Tarentines successfully kept off their
            enemies, whilst the Samnite wars occupied the Sabellian nations in other
            parts, and they were of course well satisfied that these wars continued so
            long. In fact they could wish for nothing better than that the Romans and
            Samnites should continue to keep each other in check. It is related1
            that they made an attempt to act as arbitrators in the third Samnite
            war, and that they required both Romans and Samnites to lay down their
            arms. But they had neither the courage nor the strength to inforce obedience to a sentence of arbitration, and so they were obliged to
            look on whilst Samnium was more and more exhausted by the wars with
            Borne. Now, after the termination of the third war, it was no longer their
            flocks and their country-houses alone which they had to defend from the
            rude hands of the spoilers. The goal of the Roman legions was the
            citadel of Tarentum; the Romans could only aim at possessing what the
            Lucanians had contented themselves with spoiling and plundering.
            
          
          There was peace and amity between Rome and Tarentum.
            However clearly the instinct of self-preservation might have urged the
            Tarentines not to allow the Samnites to be utterly crushed, they had still
            abstained from all acts of hostility towards Rome. Samnium bled
            to death before their eyes, and the Romans established themselves at Venusia, close on the frontier of the
            Tarentine territory. It was hardly to be expected that they would
            stop there; and sober men, who saw clearly the hopelessness of a
            continued resistance, probably thought a union with Rome the only chance
            of being able to save the independence of the town. The city of Naples
            furnished a precedent. Naples preserved her own local self-government and
            her Greek nationality under Roman supremacy. This view was supported
            chiefly by the better and wealthier class of citizens, who with a greater
            insight into the political position and the relative strength of Tarentum and
            Rome united aversion to a war which could entail no other consequence than the
            utter ruin of their native town. There was thus a Roman party in Tarentum,
            which, as everywhere in the Italian towns, consisted naturally of the adherents
            of aristocratic institutions. These were opposed by the democrats, who,
            having nothing to lose, were prepared to hazard everything for the defence of
            the independence of their town and of the popular form of
            government, which, under the influence of Rome, would have had
            little chance of continuing long; but even the most
            reckless demagogues were not so blind that they expected to be
            able to withstand the Romans with their own unaided
            strength. Accordingly they directed their hopes towards Greece, from
            whence three times already help had come to the Italian Greeks. Whether
            negotiations had commenced with King Pyrrhus in the very commencement of
            the quarrel with Rome we cannot tell. It is, however, very probable
            that this was the case, for as early as 289, i.e. eight years
            previously, the Tarentine fleet had assisted Pyrrhus in the defence of
            Corcyra against Demetrius, and therefore they could expect help
            in return. The Romans therefore were in danger of seeing the best harbour
            on the coast of Italy, and the richest and most influential town, fall
            into the hands of a foreign power, which might put the greatest obstacles
            in the way of the consolidation of their dominion in Italy.
            
          
          This was the state of things when, in the autumn of
            the year 282 , suddenl and unexpectedly, a Roman
            fleet of ten ships of war appeared before the harbour of Tarentum. The treaty
            of 301 forbade the Romans to sail beyond the Lacinian promontory at the furthest southern extremity of the Tarentine Gulf. The
            excitement among the Tarentines, produced by the sudden, appearance of the Roman fleet,
            was therefore natural and justifiable. If the foreign fleet was allowed to
            sail into the inner harbour, Tarentum, was in the power of the Romans! The
            Tarentines interpreted the proceeding of the Romans as an open act
            of hostility. Nor could they view it in any other light, considering the
            stipulations of their treaty with Rome, and considering the laws of
            legitimate warfare, as they were understood and accepted at that time.
            They stood bravely on their defence, manned their ships, and sailed out
            to attack the Romans. Four out of ten Roman vessels were sunk, one
            was taken, the others escaped. The Roman admiral fell, a number of seamen
            and soldiers were taken prisoners; the former were sold as slaves, the
            latter put to death.
            
          
          It is strange that ancient as well as modern writers
            have represented this attack on the Roman fleet as an act of lawless
            violence, as a treacherous and unjustifiable surprise of harmless,
            defenceless, and unsuspecting men, by a demented and infuriated people.
            Surely it was not the Romans, approaching with a fully equipped fleet,
            ready for action, who could be considered unprepared, but the Tarentines,
            who, expecting no enemy, were assembled in the theatre, and whose ships,
            lying in the harbour, could neither be ready manned nor in a state fit for
            an engagement. If it had been the intention of the Romans to avoid a
            collision—if they really, as it is stated, sailed up to the port of
            Tarentum without any hostile intention, out of mere curiosity, and
            expecting a friendly reception, they had surely time enough to discover
            their error and to sail back before a single Tarentine vessel could get
            out of port or near them. The fact that they accepted and fought a
            battle shows that they were not the harmless strangers they are
            represented to have been. But, supposing that the action was fought in the
            heat of excitement, and without justification on the part of the Tarentines;
            is it likely that, instead of cooling down when the battle was over, they
            should have persisted in a course of folly and madness. We cannot imagine
            the democratic government of Tarentum to have been so utterly savage and
            brutal, so regardless of the laws of civilised warfare, as to think that
            they murdered in cold blood a number of innocent men, whom they had
            enticed into a snare and attacked contrary to the law of nations. They regarded
            the Romans and treated them as pirates, and they were fully justified in doing
            so. Not only was the treaty with Rome which excluded Roman ships of
            war from the Tarentine Gulf in full force; it was even at this time
            of the utmost importance to the Tarentines, since the Romans had shown
            their intention of establishing themselves in southern Italy, since they had
            founded maritime colonies on the coast of the Adriatic, and
            since they had occupied Thurii. If the Romans,
            as is highly probable, had made use of their fleet for the
            occupation of Thurii, and had since then
            established there a station for it, this was in itself a violation of the
            treaty with Tarentum, which must have galled the Tarentines all
            the more as they had not the courage or the means to wage war with
            Rome on that account.
            
          
          Quite irrespectively, however, of any special treaty,
            the entrance of foreign ships of war into the Tarentine harbour was an
            open violation of the laws of war as then universally recognised. When, in
            the Peloponnesian war, the Athenian fleet, on its way to Syracuse, sailed
            along the coast of Italy, all the harbours and towns, and
            amongst them that of Tarentum, were closed against it. The people of
            Camarina declined to receive into their harbour more than one single
            Athenian war vessel. The Corcyraeans likewise would
            not consent to more than one Athenian or Lacedaemonian war vessel entering
            their harbour; if more approached, they were to be regarded
            as hostile. The Romans showed the same jealousy themselves, when, some
            years later, a Carthaginian fleet appeared before this very harbour of
            Tarentum. They warned the Carthaginians off, though the latter offered their
            co-operation to drive away the garrison of Pyrrhus, a service they were bound
            to render, according to the terms of alliance between Rome and Carthage.
            The Romans demanded even an explanation and satisfaction
            from Carthage? Is it probable that they were ignorant of the breach
            of law which they had committed by sending their fleet into the harbour of
            Tarentum?
            
          
          The proceeding of the Romans, their unexpected
            appearance before Tarentum, and the decision and exasperation of the
            Tarentines, admit only of one explanation. There was, as we have said, in
            Tarentum a Roman party, consisting of the upper classes. This party had
            formed a connexion with Rome, and hoped, just as the same party had
            done in Thurii, to deliver up the town into the
            hands of the Romans. The democrats of Tarentum, in possession of the
            government, were therefore perfectly justified in frustrating the
            treasonable intentions of their opponents, who wished to deliver them into the
            hands of the Romans, and in treating them as men guilty of an act of
            hostility without a previous declaration of war. The subsequent events
            showed that they were right, that an agreement existed between the Romans
            and the aristocratic party, and that their object was to
            bring Tarentum into the power of the Romans.
            
          
          However, whether the Tarentines were in the right or
            not, that was no longer of any consequence. The die was cast, and the war
            with Rome was now inevitable which Tarentum had, with unpardonable
            supineness, postponed from year to year, at a time when decisive action
            might have saved the Samnites from being overpowered. Now that their blood was
            roused, they resolved to repair by vigour and rapidity their past neglect,
            and to follow up their defensive proceeding against the Roman
            fleet by an attack on the Roman garrison in Thurii.
            The occupation of Thurii by the Romans had been
            a thorn in the flesh to the Tarentines. With the Thurinians, their
            near neighbours, they had fought out many an old grudge. The fertile
            territory of Metapontum, lying between the two towns, had been the apple
            of discord. The mutual jealousy of the two Greek towns had turned out
            to the advantage of the Lucanians, and had rendered it possible for them
            to injure and to weaken both. Now the Thurinians,
            to save themselves from the Lucanians, had called to their aid, not their
            countrymen, the Tarentines, but the Roman barbarians, and had given up
            the town to them.' This called for revenge, a revenge which was
            recommended also by policy. Thurii was attacked
            and taken by the Tarentines, probably with the aid of the fleet which
            had just discomfited the Roman squadron. The Roman garrison of Thurii capitulated, and was allowed to retire. The
            aristocrats were expelled,2 and the town plundered. A democratic
            government was established, as a matter of course.
            
          
          Thus the war with Rome had in fact begun—a war which
            the Tarentines felt was more than they could carry on with their own
            unaided strength. The negotiations with Pyrrhus, which were begun probably
            much earlier, were now resumed. But it would take a considerable time
            before the conditions of the alliance could be agreed upon, and before Pyrrhus
            could complete his preparations for an expedition across the Ionian Sea.
            In the meantime the Romans might hope to anticipate Pyrrhus, and in
            one way or another to make themselves masters of Tarentum. Their first
            step was not a declaration of war, as might have been expected after what
            had taken place at Tarentum and Thurii, but an
            embassy, commissioned to prevent the breaking out of a war , and to
            re-establish the old friendly relations between Rome and Tarentum, which
            had been destroyed by that untoward event in the harbour of Tarentum. Rome
            demanded the release of the prisoners, and the delivering up of
            those who had instigated the attack on the fleet—that is, the leaders
            of the democratic party; moreover the restoration of the expelled Thurinians, and compensation for the damage done to
            that town. Had the Tarentines consented to these conditions, Thurii, as well as Tarentum, would have fallen at once
            into the power of the Romans. For, after the surrender of the heads of the
            democratic party, the Roman partisans would have come into power, and
            the consequence would have been that they would have put the town under
            the protection of the Romans, just as the democrats afterwards gave it
            over to Pyrrhus. Both parties tried their strength for some time.
            At length the democrats prevailed, and rejected the Roman conditions.
            Of these internal contests we find but slight indications in our
            authorities, but there is ground for supposing that the parties were not
            so violently opposed to one another in Tarentum as in other Greek towns,
            where contests of this sort generally ended with slaughter, confiscation,
            and the exile of the weaker party. The aristocratic party in Tarentum,
            which advocated a treaty with Rome, could not carry out their policy, but
            they must have been very near doing so, as appears from the course of events
            which followed.
            
          
          The most extraordinary anecdotes are related about the
            reception of the Roman embassy in Tarentum. L. Postumius,
            who was at the head of it, was greeted, it is said, with scoffing and
            abuse by the assembled Tarentine people. His foreign costume and the
            mistakes in his broken Greek furnished some mountebanks with
            materials of ribaldry and insult, in which the assembled
            people joined, amidst shouts of merriment. At last a vulgar wretch is
            said to have thrown dirt on the white toga of the Roman, and this infamous
            treatment of the sacred person of an ambassador, instead of causing
            general indignation, was applauded as a merry trick. In a moment, when the
            highest interests of the state were being discussed, when every man knew that
            on the decision depended the safety of his property, his freedom, and
            his life, the whole people are said to have behaved like a dissolute
            company of revellers and rioters in the midst of a drunken debauch.
            
          
          It is hardly necessary to say that these anecdotes do
            not belong to history. They carry on themselves the very stamp of
            falsehood. They owe their origin to the servile spirit of those Greek
            historians who made it their duty to flatter and extol the Romans. Nowhere
            is that spirit more apparent than in this part of the history of
            Rome. Roman virtue appears nowhere so exalted, by contrast with the
            degenerate Greeks, as in the numerous anecdotes with which the story of
            the war with Pyrrhus is filled. It moves our disgust to observe the
            sycophancy to which the Greek writers could stoop. And in order to
            celebrate Roman virtue, Greeks had to be represented as cowards, traitors, and
            fools, as gluttons .and drunkards. The Tarentines owe their bad reputation
            partly to the spirit which pervaded these stories. But that they were not such despicable,
            wretched, and low scoundrels as Plutarch, Appian, and Dio Cassius represent, appears with sufficient evidence from a sober examination of
            the recorded events.
            
          
          The embassy returned to Rome without having
            accomplished its end. The dignity of the Roman people clearly demanded an
            immediate declaration of war, even if the disgraceful treatment of the
            embassy by the Tarentine mob had not taken place. But the senate hesitated
            for for several days in its decision. The situation of the republic
            was not difficult. After the victorious termination of the war with the Boii in
            Etruria, no more danger threatened on this side, even if the condition
            of Etruria and the precarious nature of all treaties of peace with
            the Gauls demanded the presence of a Roman army on the northern frontier.
            The Samnites were exhausted, and unable, if not unwilling, to renew the
            war; the Lucanians had only just been defeated. But even if these
            peoples had given cause for anxiety, they could not have prevented Rome
            from declaring war against Tarentum without further deliberation. The
            delay of the Romans must be attributed to other causes. They knew that
            a war with Tarentum, if it did not lead to a conquest of the town,
            would be of no use, and that of such a conquest there was not the
            slightest hope so long as the Tarentine fleet protected the entrance to
            the harbour. The Romans, utterly inexperienced in the art of besieging a
            large town, could accomplish nothing by force against a place
            like Tarentum. It could not be blockaded, isolated, and reduced to
            surrender by hunger. If an ingenious coup de main did not succeed, treason
            was the only means by which Tarentum could pass into their hands. By treason
            the Romans took Tarentum twice at a later period, but never by force of
            arms. Through an understanding with a friendly party inside the walls,
            Tarentum, like so many other towns, might perhaps be won. The attempt
            certainly had once failed, but the Romans were not the sort of people to
            be frightened from their object by one failure. They therefore decided to
            possess themselves of the town, if possible, by the help of their friends.
            The attempt by means of a fleet could not be repeated. An army
            was now sent by land into the Tarentine territory under the consul Q. Aemilius Barbula, commissioned
            to repeat the offers of peace made by Postumius,
            and at the same time to support these offers by suitable operations in
            the field. The Tarentines were to understand clearly what they risked
            if they continued to reject the treaty with Rome, and to look elsewhere
            for support. The consul scattered the Tarentine mercenaries and native
            troops, and laid waste the country, but spared the property and persons
            of the adherents of the aristocratic party. While the war was thus
            exercising its pressure on Tarentum, the Romans still offered peace on the
            previous terms. The democrats were in a difficult position. Some of their
            most influential men were absent on an embassy which had been sent
            to Pyrrhus. Their opponents gained ground day by day, and they
            succeeded at last in appointing Agis, the head of the Roman faction, as
            commander-in-chief. The moment had now arrived when the shrewd and
            persevering policy of the Romans was on the point of being crowned
            with success. As soon as Agis should have entered on his office, the
            Romans might hope to be admitted into the town. But in the very moment of
            success, their hopes were dashed to the ground. The precious prize,
            after which they had already stretched forth the hand, was wrested
            from them by one more rapid in the race. Kineas, the
            ambassador and confidential minister of King Pyrrhus, appeared in Tarentum
            with the promise of immediate support from his master. Agis was deposed
            from his office before he had even entered on it. The democratic party gained
            the upper hand, and from henceforth the fate of Tarentum was placed in the
            hands of the adventurous prince who boasted of having sprung from the race
            of Achilles, and believed himself destined to be the champion of the
            Greeks against the barbarians and the descendants of the Trojans.
            
          
          
             
          
          CHAPTER XV.
                
          
          THE EARLIER ADVENTURES OF PYRRHUS.
                
          
          
             
          
          The first hostile collision of the Romans with the
            Greeks of the mother country obliges us to cast a glance at the condition
            of that country, the history of which from this time forwards is gradually
            bound up with that of Rome, and whose intellectual life was to fertilise
            the Roman, and to exercise a great and lasting influence on the course
            of civilisation in antiquity and in modern times.
            
          
          When Rome emerged from the narrow limits of Latium, and,
            by the conquest of Samnium, became the first power in Italy, when she
            glowed in youthful vigour and was thirsting for action and dominion,
            Greece was already at the end of her political career. The brilliancy of
            the free commonwealths of the olden time had faded away before the
            rising sun of the Macedonian kingdom, which, after a wonderfully rapid and
            victorious course, set in the storm-clouds of a period as calamitous as
            the last ages of the republics, but less glorious. Alexander the Great,
            the deified conqueror, had, with the aid of the Greek
            nation, overthrown at one blow the decaying edifice of the
            Persian monarchy, and had formed a gigantic empire, whose unwieldy body
            was dissolved as soon as his spirit animated it no more. His example had
            fired his generals with a mad passion for conquest and dominion, and there
            arose everywhere, from the Adriatic Sea to India and from the Euxine
            to the Falls of the Nile, Greek kings in barbaric lands, all emulating the
            great Alexander, and striving not to fall short of their illustrious model
            either in virtues or in vices. Their ambition was directed to form states and to
            found dynasties. It was a time of gigantic struggles, wild passions, and rapid
            and astonishing changes. Nothing seemed to be enduring. Kingdoms rose and
            disappeared again in quick succession; they grew, expanded, fell to pieces, and
            were formed again in different combinations of the constituent parts, as
            the blind fortune of war directed, or the genius of the Macedonian
            generals shaped them.
            
          
          In vain did the very best among Alexander’s successors
            strive against the inert opposition which Nature herself, in the extent,
            position, and character of the countries of the great Macedonian empire,
            brought to bear against every attempt to restore the ill-cemented monarchy
            of Alexander. Even the genius of Alexander himself would not have
            been able to keep together for a continuance the state which military
            success had formed for the moment. The empire was broken up in several
            fragments, the form and extent of which were chiefly determined by
            geographical conditions, by seas, mountains, and deserts—the
            natural boundaries, which can seldom be overstepped by human efforts
            for a long time. Egypt separated itself first from the great mass of
            countries with which it was connected only by a narrow ligament, and Egypt
            owed principally to its geographical seclusion a period of steady
            development under the shrewd Ptolemies. In the same manner
            Europe broke loose from the Asiatic parts of the monarchy.
            The original country of Macedonia shrunk gradually as a separate state
            almost within its old limits, and, after long and chequered wars, fell to
            the house of the chivalrous Demetrius Poliorcetes. Asia, with its
            unfavourable geographical formation and enormous extent, intersected and
            as it were rent asunder by deserts and mountain chains, inhabited in
            parts by warlike tribes whom neither the Persian kings nor Alexander had
            brought to real obedience,—Asia itself proved too large and unwieldy for
            one single state, and was broken up into several parts. Even the great
            empire of the Seleucid, extending from the mountains of Media to the
            Mediterranean Sea, could make no pretensions to represent the empire of
            Alexander. The eastern provinces of the Persian dominion as far as the Indus
            had never been properly conquered, and after Alexander’s death
            they soon fell again into the power of native princes and peoples. In
            Asia Minor there sprang up a number of independent states, such as Pontus,
            Bithynia, and Pergamus. The mountain tribes in
            the Taurus, and in the highlands of Armenia and Cappadocia, had always
            preserved their independence. The town republics of Greece and the
            islands, hut especially the trading city of Rhodes, which soon became a
            naval power of the first rank, were never reduced to such a state of
            slavish subjection and obedience to the new monarchs as the subdued
            nations of Asia, who were never accustomed to any but a despotic
            government. They were neither despoiled nor enslaved. They retained
            their own constitutions and a degree of political independence which
            appears hardly consistent with a state of complete subjection. The
            internal party struggles and the neighbourly feuds were limited, democracy, was
            mitigated ; and if the Greeks could have forgotten what they had
            once been, if they had understood the times and modestly resigned
            themselves not to rule and tyrannize over others, they would still have
            enjoyed a full measure of happiness and national glory. Greece was still
            the home of the arts and the nursery of civilisation. The Greeks were
            called by their high gifts to teach the nations around the Mediterranean
            to aspire to the higher enjoyments of humanity and to true freedom. They
            were chosen and fitted by nature to take the lead in spiritual and
            intellectual aspirations; and no barbarian power could have interfered
            with them or hindered them if they had only understood how to subdue
            their own evil passions. The Greeks themselves, not the chances of an
            adverse fate, are to blame that unfortunately the task which they seemed called
            to perform was performed but partially and imperfectly.
            
          
          The north-western part of the country had taken hardly
            any share in the national development of the Hellenic nation. Aetolia and
            Akarnania were regarded in the Peloponnesian war as still barbarian
            countries. This was still more the case with the district north of the Ambracian
            Gulf, extending along the Ionian Sea to the Akrokeraunian promontory and inland as far as the mountain range of the Pindus, a
            country which, by way of contrast to the adjacent islands, was called
            Epirus, that is, the continent. Still the peoples who lived here—viz.,
            the Molossians, Chaonians, Thresprotians,
            and others—were in no essential points different from the Greeks. They
            were, on the contrary, of a kindred race, and the difference
            between them and the Hellenes was chiefly this, that they
            bad remained behind in their development while the Hellenes had made
            rapid strides forward. In the older times there was therefore no great
            diversity between these peoples and the other Hellenic races. On the
            contrary, these districts were rather drawn to Hellas in the primeval
            period by community of religion and by national intercourse. Here was one
            of the most venerable and most ancient sanctuaries of the Greeks, the temple
            and the oracle of Zeus in Dodona. Here the impulse was given to the Dorian
            migration, which changed the aspect of Greece, for from this part came
            the invaders and conquerors of Thessaly. In these wild mountains and
            narrow valleys, cut off from intercourse with the other races, they had
            preserved, almost in its original purity, the simple manners of the heroic
            age. While everywhere else in Greece hereditary royalty had given way to
            the dominion either of the nobles or of the people, most of these
            small tribes of Epirus lived under hereditary princes, of whom sometimes
            one and sometimes another laid claim to a sort of supremacy over the rest.
            The Molossians, were governed by a king who traced his origin back
            to Pyrrhus, the son of Achilles. The chief men of the people, assembled
            every year in the village of Passaron, the principal
            place of the country, brought to their king the customary presents of
            choice cattle, and renewed with him mutually the oath of fidelity.
            
          
          The country was but ill fitted for agriculture. The
            mountain slopes gave pasture to numerous flocks, in which consisted the
            wealth of the people. The inhospitable rocky coast of the Ionian Sea was
            not inviting to Greek settlers. Trade, industry, the arts, which were
            developed in the busy life of Greek towns, found no home in
            these inclement highlands, where the inhabitants lived only in small
            open villages. The most fertile part of the country, which lay on the
            Ambracian Gulf, was politically isolated from the rest. The kings of the
            Molossians therefore, even if they were able to enforce the obedience of
            the numerous races of the interior, were not great potentates, and
            had but little prospect of being able to take a leading
            and honourable part in the national affairs of Greece.
            
          
          Epirus emerged from this isolation at the time when
            the neighbouring country of Macedonia, which had long stood in a similar
            relation to Greece, began to take part in Grecian politics. Olympias, the
            wife of Philip of Macedonia, was the sister of Alexander, the king of the Molossians.
            In this way the royal houses of Macedonia and Epirus became related to one
            another, and this relationship could not fail to have a great influence on
            both countries. After Alexander of Epirus had fallen in the war with
            the Lucanians, his cousin Eakides, who succeeded him in the government,
            became involved in the troubles which broke out in Macedonia, after the
            death of Alexander the Great, respecting the succession to the throne. He
            supported the claims of his relations of the royal house of Philip, and in
            their cause lost his throne and his life. The wretch Kassander,
            who never carried on a war without treason and assassination, and who saw
            that he could secure for himself the Macedonian throne only by
            the extermination of the family of Alexander, had instigated in
            Epirus a rebellion against Eakides.
            
          
          Pyrrhus, the son of Eakides, was at that time a child
            in the arms of his nurse. The rebels sought his life. A few faithful servants
            barely succeeded in saving the boy. Glaukias, king of
            the neighbouring Illyria, espoused his cause, protected him from the revenge
            of Kassander, and, when Pyrrhus was twelve years
            old, he conducted him back to Epirus and set him on the throne of his
            father. But a child was not equal to the task of governing such an unruly
            nation as the Epirots. After a few years Pyrrhus
            was again an exile. As a youth of seventeen he joined Demetrius Poliorcetes,
            who had married his sister Deidamia, and was just then preparing to
            leave Greece and go to Asia, to the assistance of his father Antigonus, who was
            threatened by the alliance of Kassander,
            Ptolemy, and Seleucus. Pyrrhus fought with courage by the side of his
            brother-in-law Demetrius in the great battle at Ipsos. But victory
            was on the side of his enemies. Pyrrhus was sent as a hostage to
            Egypt. Here, at the court of Ptolemy, fortune began at length to smile
            upon him. His handsome, manly person, his youthful courage and heroism,
            together with his royal bearing, won for him the favour of the royal
            ladies. The Queen Berenice selected him as the husband of
            her daughter Antigone, and Ptolemy was very glad to gain in the young
            prince a friend for himself who would be a useful ally as king of Epirus. With
            Egyptian money and troops Pyrrhus returned home, where he found his
            cousin Neoptolemus in possession of the government. The two princes
            agreed to govern in common. But the unavoidable consequences of such an
            unsatisfactory arrangement soon began to appear; they produced at first
            mutual suspicion, then fear of treachery, at last assassination. Neoptolemus
            was the victim, probably because Pyrrhus anticipated an act which the other was
            meditating. However, this murder casts a deep shadow on the character
            of Pyrrhus, who seems to have been on the whole remarkably free from' the
            vice then too common among the successors of Alexander, of shedding
            innocent blood.
            
          
          Pyrrhus, at length in undisturbed possession of the
            throne of his fathers, made use of the continual disorders of the time to
            enlarge his kingdom. The two sons of Kassander,
            Antipater and Alexander, were fighting for the possession of Macedonia.
            Alexander purchased the cooperation of Pyrrhus at the price of the frontier
            districts of Paranaea and Tymphaea,
            and of the country on the Ambracian Gulf, which was most important for
            Epirus. Now Pyrrhus acted, on a smaller scale, like the
            great Alexander. He enlarged Ambracia, which became from this time
            the principal town of the country, and he established harbours and towns. Now,
            for the first time, Epirus had access to the sea, an easy communication
            with Greece, and a fertile district, the want of which had been
            felt before. He acquired also Corcyra by marriage with Lanassa, the daughter of Agathocles of Syracuse, who
            had taken this island in one of his predatory expeditions. He lost it
            again when Eanassa ran away from him and
            married Demetrius, who thereupon took possession of the island; but,
            with the help of the Tarentine fleet, Pyrrhus succeeded in regaining
            Corcyra, and thus the friendly relations were formed between Tarentum and
            Pyrrhus which were to lead to his future collision with the Romans.
            
          
          Pyrrhus reigned six or seven years in peace, enjoying
            a remarkably long respite from war in the midst of a stormy period. He was
            then drawn again into the vortex of disputes about the possession of Macedonia,
            which Demetrius, his former friend and present enemy, had for the
            moment conquered. A league was formed by the other princes, Ptolemy, Seleucus,
            and Lysimachus, against Demetrius. Pyrrhus joined this league, and
            succeeded in driving Demetrius out of Macedonia. But he was not strong
            enough to keep the spoils for himself. He had to resign them
            to Lysimachus, and he retired into his own kingdom, where he again
            lived in peace and quiet for a number of years (from 286 to 280). If we
            reflect that Pyrrhus for the considerable time of from twelve to thirteen years
            occupied himself with the quiet government of his country, we shall hardly
            be able to agree with those who call him a mere military adventurer, without
            any higher or nobler object than fame and aggrandisement. He was indeed a
            soldier of the first rank, a true soldier, of personal
            lion-hearted courage—a courage which called forth admiration at a
            time surely not deficient in brave warriors. War had a peculiar charm
            for him, for he loved the din of battle like an Homeric champion, without
            thinking of the gain it might bring. He was at the same time acknowledged
            to be the first general of the school of Alexander, and we can
            easily believe the story related by Plutarch, that Hannibal considered him
            the greatest military genius. The Epirots, who
            were inspired with enthusiasm for him, called him ‘The Eagle,’ and
            followed his bold flight with the enthusiasm that leads to victory. But he
            was at the same time a great politician, with a talent for organisation,
            and an able ruler of his country and people. He created a civilised state
            in the wild highlands of Epirus, where formerly at least fourteen rude
            tribes had led a half predatory, half pastoral life. How well this state
            was knit together and how admirably it was organised may be gathered from
            this, that, during the absence of the king for more than five years in
            Italy and Sicily, his son Ptolemy, a boy of fifteen, could conduct
            the government at a time when nothing seemed constant, and when, in
            addition to old enemies and rivals, the Gauls threatened to invade the
            land. Ambracia owes it to him that it became the seat of Greek
            civilisation, so that it deserved to be named with the most celebrated
            Hellenic towns. He knew how to draw towards himself men of talent and
            character, and to employ them in his service. The Thessalian Kineas—the first, but surely not the only one in his
            council—was not a mere rhetorician and talker, but a statesman whose
            choice reflected credit and honour upon him. If his contemporaries compared Kineas to Demosthenes, they conferred on him the highest praise which
            a man could aspire to. His eloquence no doubt was not of that kind which
              roused or calmed the waves of a popular assembly, but it was powerful in
              the council of kings and in negotiations with ambassadors of
              foreign states. Pyrrhus said of him, with that modesty which
              is peculiar to conscious merit, that the speeches of Kineas had
              conquered for him more towns than his own sword. In one thing especially Kineas was worthy to be compared to Demosthenes—that
              he was a man of decided character. He was no obsequious servant; he spoke
              openly with his master, and devoted himself to him with his whole
              soul. That Pyrrhus knew how to gain the attachment and friendship of
              such a man shows that he possessed a spirit capable of subduing the hearts
              of men. It was not from calculating dissimulation, but from the impulse of
              his inmost nature, that he approached his inferiors' with affability,
              that he showed himself superior to derision and insult, that he forgave
              conquered enemies and recognised willingly true greatness in his
              opponents.
              
            
          Qualities like these mark Pyrrhus as a man far above
            the mere rude soldier. This is still more apparent from what we are told
            of his literary pursuits. He spared time and had taste enough to write an
            account of his eventful life. He who in many things emulated the great
            Alexander had no doubt also a high appreciation of the glories of
            Greek art and poetry, and he felt a genuine enthusiasm for the people
            whose supremacy over the barbarians in the west he endeavoured to
            establish.
            
          
          If we put all these features together and try to
            realise the picture of Pyrrhus, we shall find on comparison with what we know
            of Kassander, Ptolemy Keraunus,
            and most of their contemporaries, who distinguished themselves chiefly by
            their ungovernable cruelty and faithlessness, that Pyrrhus was not only
            one of the ablest generals and princes, but amiable also as a man, and
            worthy of our sympathy and respect. The boldness with which he ventured on
            an undertaking to which his own strength and that of his people were not
            equal cannot degrade him in our eyes. It is an easy matter nowadays to
            designate as a great mistake the expedition of Pyrrhus into Italy. We
            are wise because we know the result. But if we can realise the times
            and circumstances of the expedition, and place ourselves in the position
            of the king of Epirus, we shall probably judge differently. 
            
          
          Pyrrhus had hitherto been attended by great political
            plans of and military success. He had created, one may say, a mighty
            empire. His Epirots were, as soldiers, quite
            equal to the Macedonians, and he thought himself not unworthy of
            being compared, as a general, to Alexander the Great. The foundation of a
            western Grecian empire in Italy and Sicily was no unreasonable project. If
            his predecessor, Alexander of Epirus, had almost succeeded in uniting
            the whole of Larger Greece and in subduing the
            Lucanians—an undertaking which was frustrated only by the hand of
            an assassin; if the tyrant Agathocles had conquered almost the whole
            island of Sicily with the limited forces of the town of Syracuse, and had
            nearly overthrown the proud and mighty Carthage, then certainly the king
            of the new enlarged and strengthened Epirus might hope to bring such
            an undertaking to a successful termination, assisted by the Greek towns
            who implored his help. His calculation was based on such a knowledge of facts
            as the history of the previous events in Italy had brought out. Rome
            was to him an unknown quantity which he did not rate sufficiently high. He
            looked upon the Romans simply as one of the many Italian nations, not more
            nor less powerful than the Lucanians or the Samnites. If we can believe
            the reports about the war (and some of them were most probably from the pen of
            Pyrrhus himself), he was both astonished and disappointed when he became
            acquainted with their military organisation, their state and their policy.
            Here was the great error in his calculation, an error for which he can hardly
            be held responsible; for there cannot be a doubt that an accurate
            knowledge of Rome at that time was nowhere to be met with among the
            Greeks. 
            
          
          
             
          
          CHAPTER XVI.
                
          
          THE WAR OF PYRRHUS IN ITALY AND SICILY.
                
          
          
             
          
          The arrival of Kineas in
            Tarentum, as we have seen, altered at once the situation of affairs. The Roman
            party lost power and influence; the democrats received as their deliverers a
            force of 3,000 Epirotic soldiers under Milo, forming
            the first detachment of the army of Pyrrhus. All prospects of a peaceful settlement
            of the Roman difficulties were at an end, and a war was commenced in which
            the independence, perhaps the existence, of Tarentum was at stake.
            The consul Aemilius retired from the neighbourhood of
            Tarentum, to pass the winter in Apulia. His project of getting
              possession of the town by an agreement with the Roman party had failed,
              and he could now effect nothing more.
              
            
          Pyrrhus himself soon landed on Italian soil. During
            the course of the year 281 he had completed his preparations. With Ptolemy and
            Antiochus, the rulers of Egypt and Syria, and with Antigonus, the son
            of Demetrius, he had concluded treaties, by which he not
            only provided for the security of his own hereditary kingdom of
            Epirus, but obtained promises of assistance for his campaign in Italy. His
            rivals were glad to see him embark on a distant expedition, because he was
            the most formidable of all the competitors for the possession of
            Macedonia. After a very dangerous passage, in which he lost many
            of his ships, Pyrrhus landed in Italy before the beginning of spring
            (280 BC), with an army of 20,000 heavy-armed soldiers, 2,000 archers, 500
            slingers, 3,000 horsemen, and twenty elephants. He acted at once as king and
            absolute ruler, and enforced the strictest military discipline.
            There was an end now to the democratic disorder in Tarentum. The
            assemblies of the people, the clubs, the theatre, the gymnasia were
            closed; all public amusements were at an end. Tarentum was changed into a
            camp and an arsenal, and the young men were pressed into military service. Sentinels
            guarded the gates, to prevent the escape of those who would withdraw
            themselves from the common cause. That there were such people is natural;
            they may have been especially the adherents of that party which had
            opposed the war with Rome. But that the whole people of Tarentum were
            effeminate and unaccustomed to military service, that they held back
            through cowardice and hoped to buy themselves off with money, is doubtless
            a gross exaggeration. The Tarentines knew very well that Pyrrhus would not
            come over as the hired leader of an army, but as the head of a coalition,
            and that all the resources of the allies must be at his disposal. They had
            made brilliant promises to him. It had been said that a hundred thousand
            Greeks and Italians awaited his arrival to rise in a body against the
            hated dominion of Rome. But of this general rising there was nothing to be
            seen. Neither the Samnites nor the Lucanians nor the Bruttians moved a hand. Pyrrhus had nothing but his own army and the reinforcements
            which he could obtain from Tarentum and perhaps from Thurii.
            The Romans had taken care that amongst their allies and subjects there
            should be no sympathy shown for Pyrrhus. All the towns which were in the
            least suspected received Roman garrisons, or were obliged to send hostages
            to Rome as pledges of their fidelity. Even from the neighbouring town of
            Praeneste, some citizens were brought to Rome, and forfeited
            their lives on account of the suspicion cast upon them, whether justly
            or unjustly, of wishing to betray the cause of Rome.
            
          
          It was not long before a Roman army appeared in
            Lucania, under the command of the consul P. Valerius Laevinus, to commence hostilities. It appears the
            Romans had no more than Pyrrhus any just idea of the formidable struggle
            which lay before them. A single consular army, that is, two Roman legions,
            with an equal number of allies, altogether from twenty to twenty-five
            thousand men, was considered sufficient to take the field against the
            Greeks. Two legions under the consul T. Coruncanius,
            were left in Etruria, without any apparent necessity; 86 two
            more legions, commanded by a praetor, were in Samnium, where no
            serious opposition was in prospect so long as Pyrrhus did not assist the
            Samnites. If the whole of the Roman forces, which easily might have been
            raised to ten legions, had been directed against Pyrrhus, to crush
            him with one blow, the danger of a rising among the Italians would
            have been removed, and the war, if not terminated at once, would have been
            confined to the districts along the southern coast. But perhaps the Romans
            thought that they would have to encounter only the Tarentines, or an
            Alexander or Kleonymus, and therefore
            ventured with insufficient strength, though covered in the rear
            by the fortress of Venusia, far into the
            neighbourhood of the Tarentine Gulf.
            
          
          Now, for the first time, Romans and Greeks faced each
            other in battle. But the latter were no longer the genuine Hellenes, not the
            heroic citizens of free states, whose sharpest weapons were enthusiasm and
            patriotism, but professional soldiers, subjects of a king, most of
            whom fought for pay, some against their will. Military discipline and
            warlike training had to supply the love of country. War had become for
            them a trade and an art, and now it was to be seen whether and how long a
            standing army of drilled soldiers could keep the field against a nation
            in arms.
            
          
          The highest development of the Macedonian phalanx had
            been reached in the Macedonian tactics which had overthrown the Persian
            empire and kept Asia in subjection, even after Alexander’s death. Armed
            with long spears and arranged in deep masses, the Macedonian phalanx was
            immovable as a wall. The light-armed troops, the horsemen, and, since
            Alexander’s time, the elephants, waited behind this wall of men for the
            moment of attack, and in case of necessity took refuge behind them as in a
            fortified camp. Thus firmness was combined with agility, although it
            appears that the phalanx was rather unwieldy, and the light arms too weak
            to make an impression on solid troops.
            
          
          The original order of a Roman army was, as it seems,
            similar to the phalanx; but the long unbroken line had been divided into
            smaller detachments since, and perhaps by Camillus. The long wars in the
            Samnite mountains naturally caused the Romans to retain and to perfect
            this organisation, which made their army more movable and pliable
            without preventing the separate bodies quickly combining and forming in one
            line. The legion now consisted of thirty companies (called ‘manipuli’) of the average strength of a hundred men,
            which were arranged in three lines of ten manipuli each, like the black squares on a chessboard. The manipuli of the first line consisted of the youngest troops, called ‘hastati;’ those of the second line, called ‘principes,’ were men in the full vigour of life
            ; those of the third, the ‘ triarii,’ formed a
            reserve of older soldiers, and were numerically only half as strong as
            the other two lines. The tactic order of the manipuli enabled the general to move the ‘principes’ forward
            into the intervals of the ‘ hastati,’ or to withdraw
            the ‘ hastati ’ back into the intervals of the ‘ principes,’ the ‘ triarii ’ being
            kept as a reserve, and only moving on when the younger troops were
            broken and forced to rally among the ranks of the veterans. The light
            troops were armed with javelins, and retired behind the solid mass of the manipuli as soon as , they had discharged their
            weapons in front of the line at the beginning of the combat. The cavalry,
            though considerably strengthened by the contingents of the allies, was the
            weak part of the Roman army, and seems never to have contributed much to
            victory.
            
          
          The difference between the Roman army and that of
            Pyrrhus lay not alone in their organisation and tactics. There was another and
            a very important feature in which the Roman they differed. The Roman army
            was a militia; it consisted of men who were soldiers only for a time, and
            who for the most part longed to return to their families, and
            their peaceful avocations. The Epirotic army
            consisted, to a great extent, of professional soldiers, who made war
            the business of their lives. Such an army has a great advantage over an
            army like the Roman. It is likely to be victorious in the beginning. But
            it is difficult to keep up its numbers, especially at a distance from
            home, whereas a militia drawn from a numerous population can be renewed
            easily. If the war, therefore, is not decided quickly by a few great
            battles, a standing army, however admirable in quality, and however well
            led, will be overpowered in the end by the strength of a whole people in arms.
            This was shown now in the war with Pyrrhus, and on a larger scale in the
            gigantic struggle with Hannibal.
            
          
          The Roman consul P. Valerius Laevinus had taken the field with a consular army of
            about 20,000 to 25,000 men. His line of retreat was covered by the strong
            fortress of Venusia, in the south of Samnium,
            and his advance against Tarentum was calculated to prevent Samnite and
            Lucanian troops from joining Pyrrhus. At the same time the Romans
            succeeded in throwing a legion, consisting of Campanian allies, into Rhegium,
            thus closing the Strait of Messina against Tarentine ships.
            
          
          The hostile armies met at Heraclea, about midway on
            the coast between Thurii and Tarentum. We
            would willingly suppose that, of the detailed account of the
            battle which Plutarch gives, some parts may be traceable to
            the report of Pyrrhus himself, or at least to other
            contemporary testimony. It would be desirable to know with
            certainty whether, as it is related, Pyrrhus really wished to put
            off the engagement, whether Laevinus urged on a
            decision, whether the field of battle was fixed by accident or
            by choice, whether the decision was long pending, and how it was at
            length brought about. The Romans, it is said, forced by their cavalry the
            passage of the river Siris, and at first defeated the Thessalian horsemen.
            Pyrrhus, in close order of battle, awaited the attack of the Romans, who
            attempted seven times to break through the rigid wall of the Epirotic phalanx. He then advanced to the attack,
            and launched his admirable cavalry, with the elephants, on
            the exhausted Romans. This decided the battle. The terrific monsters,
            which the Romans now saw for the first time, filled them with fear and
            horror. In disorderly flight they returned to the Siris, which presented
            to the defeated army a fatal obstacle. If one of the elephants had
            not been wounded, and if this incident had not caused confusion among
            the pursuers, the slaughter would have been much greater than it was. The
            camp could not be defended. It fell into the hands of the victors. The
            remains of the army were probably collected in Venusia.
            Pyrrhus had won a great and decisive battle, to which strategic talent had no
            doubt contributed as much as the bravery of his army. We may presume that he
            intentionally enticed the Romans to cross the Siris, and forced them to an
            engagement on ground where an easy retreat was cut off. That he,
            by his own example, inspired the Epirots with
            heroism we may take for granted, but none of the anecdotes which are
            related about this and other details are worth repeating.
            
          
          The losses on both sides were very considerable. If,
            as reported, 7,000 Romans were left on the field of battle and 2,000 were taken
            prisoners, there has seldom been a battle fought which, in proportion to
            the number of combatants, was more destructive. The Romans lost
            almost one-half of their army. The conquerors too suffered severely,
            if it is true that 4,000 were killed. This was a loss which must have been
            the more severely felt by Pyrrhus, because he carried on war in a foreign
            country, and could not easily replace the loss of his tried
            old warriors by new ones. We may readily believe the report that he
            was amazed when he saw with what courage the Romans fought and died, and
            that he was anxious to terminate the war as soon as possible.
            
          
          Yet, whatever may have been his losses, Pyrrhus had
            cause to be satisfied with the result of his first battle on Italian soil. He
            had justified the confidence of the Italian Greeks, who had called him to their
            assistance. Every word of discontent was now silenced in
            Tarentum, and the resources of that town were at his disposal without
            reserve or grudge. The other Greek towns joined him. The Roman garrison in Locri was surprised, and the town was given over to
            Pyrrhus. The eighth Roman legion, consisting of Campanians, was, as we
            have seen, stationed in Rhegium. Perhaps they had good reason
            to apprehend a similar act of treason on the part of the Greek
            population of Rhegium. They anticipated the danger by massacring all the
            men of Rhegium who were capable of bearing arms; and, after the example of
            their countrymen, the Mamertines, in Messina, they took possession of the
            town for themselves. If, after committing these atrocities, they had not
            thrown off their allegiance, but had kept possession of Rhegium for Rome,
            they might have expected reward instead of punishment. But they
            may have thought that after the battle of Heraclea the power of Rome
            was gone down. They hoped to keep Rhegium for themselves, and, like the
            Mamertines in Messina, to be able to form an independent state. Thus
            Rhegium was lost to the Romans, and it seems they retained not
            a single town of Magna Graecia in their power.
            
          
          The Bruttians, Lucanians,
            and Samnites had only waited for a signal to rise against Rome. They
            flocked now in great numbers to Pyrrhus. But it appears, from the
            following events, that they rendered hardly any real service. They may
            have been of some use as guerillas, and may have
            done much damage to the Romans; but if Pyrrhus tried to enrol them into
            his regular army he would not fail to find them untrustworthy n and
            lukewarm. They knew the indomitable perseverance of the Roman people,
            and the inconstancy of the Greeks. They did not feel any attachment to
            either. Romans as well as Greeks were their hereditary and natural
            enemies. The fear of Roman retaliation was, no doubt, much stronger than the
            hope of gain which the victory of Pyrrhus could hold out to them. It is
            therefore probable that the Samnite and Lucanian peoples did not formally
            resolve on a war against Rome, but that only volunteers joined Pyrrhus,
            and did so on their own account for the sake of plunder,
            without affecting materially by their co-operation the course
            of events.
            
          
          Pyrrhus judged rightly of the state of things. He
            wished to make use of the fresh impression of his victory, and to conclude
            peace with Rome, in order to devote himself to the further execution of
            his plans regarding Sicily. Whilst slowly advancing, he sent Kineas to Rome, and offered peace on the most
            favourable terms. The freedom of the Italian Greeks was the first and
            most important of his conditions. Pyrrhus could not ask for less, and
            he might have been satisfied with this concession. He had not the slightest
            inducement to protect the Italians against Rome. It was doubtful whether
            the Greek towns, once assured of their safety from Roman aggression,
            would not rather have seen these peoples under the power of Rome than in a
            state of independence; for only the fear of Rome could, as in former times,
            prevent them from turning their arms against the Greeks. If, then, in
            the various meagre accounts of the negotiations for peace, it is said that
            Pyrrhus demanded for the Samnites, the Lucanians, the Bruttians,
            and Daunians the restoration of all that the Romans
            had taken from them, all that can be meant must be, at the
            outside, the withdrawal of the Roman colonists from Luceria and Venusia.
            
          
          The embassy of Kineas to
            Rome was celebrated in antiquity and was a favourite topic for rhetorical
            declamation. It is said that he took with him beautiful presents for men
            and women, but offered them in vain. Rome, which in a later time the
            Numidian king Jugurtha declared to be ready to sell itself if only a
            purchaser could be found, was still, as is related, pure and virtuous. It
            was the time of Manius Curius,
            the conqueror of the Samnites, who, sitting by his own hearth and eating
            his simple peasant’s food, had proudly rejected the tempting presents of
            the Samnites; it was the time when C. Cornelius Rufinus was cast out of
            the senate by the censors because he had silver plate to the weight of ten
            pounds in his use. And was not Fabricius, the
            first soldier and statesman of his time, a pattern of simplicity and
            contentment, and superior to all temptation? What a contrast to the
            mercenary Greeks, whose greatest patriots and statesmen were
            publicly accused of bribery, and were compelled to defend themselves
            against such charges before the public tribunals! But Kineas was a shrewd, experienced negotiator. Where one scheme failed, he tried
            another. He discovered the point where the stout Romans were vulnerable.
            He flattered their pride. On the second day after his arrival he knew
            the names of all the senators and knights, and had something obliging to
            say to each. He visited the influential men in their houses, to get them
            secretly to favour his propositions. At length, when he appeared in
            the senate and made known his commission, when he brought offers of
            peace and friendship from the powerful king of Epirus, the redoubted warrior,
            the victor of Heraclea, the senate wavered in its decision; the
            deliberations lasted many days, and it appeared that the advice of
            those would prevail whose courage was damped and whose confidence was
            small. At that critical moment, the blind Appius Claudius, bowed down with
            age and infirmity, appeared, supported by his sons, in the solemn
            assembly. He had for some years retired from public life, but his haughty
            temper could not brook the idea that Rome should accept laws from a foreign
            conqueror. The Claudian pride, which animated him was the genuine Roman
            pride, the first national virtue. He summoned all his strength once more
            to raise his voice in that council which he had so often swayed by his
            wisdom, and had subdued by his indomitable will. As if from
            the grave, and as if inspired by the genius of a better time, his
            words, echoing in the ears of the breathless assembly, scared away all
            pusillanimous considerations and infused the spirit of resistance which
            animated the men of Rome when, from the height of the Capitol, they beheld
            the Gaulish conquerors rioting in the ruins of their town. The speech
            of Appius Claudius was a monument of a glorious time, the contemplation of
            which warmed and inspired succeeding generations. It is the first speech
            of the contents of which there has been preserved a substantially correct
            report. Later generations believed they possessed even the exact words,
            and Cicero speaks of it as of a literary composition of acknowledged
            authenticity. This view is hardly tenable; but it may be believed that
            the general purport and some of the arguments of the speech were
            faithfully preserved in the Claudian family books, and we cannot deny
            ourselves the pleasure of listening to the faint echo which introduces us
            for the first time into the immediate presence of the most august assembly
            of the old world.
            
          
          According to the tradition, Appius spoke something as
            follows: ‘Hitherto, assembled fathers, I used to mourn that I was deprived of
            the light of the eye; now, however, I should consider myself happy if, in
            addition to that, I had lost the sense of hearing, that I might not hear
            the disgraceful counsels which are here publicly proposed, to the
            shame of the Roman name. How are you changed from your former estate!
            Whither have your pride and your courage flown? You that boasted you would
            have opposed the great Alexander himself, if, in the period of your youth, he
            had dared to invade Italy; that he would have lost in battle against you
            the fame of the invincible, and would have found defeat or death in Italy,
            to the glory of the Roman name,—you now show that all this was
            nothing but vain boasting ; for you fear now the Chaonians and Molossians, who have always been the spoil of the Macedonians,
            and you tremble before Pyrrhus, who passed his life in the service of one
            of Alexander’s satellites. Thus one single misfortune has made you forget
            what you once were. And you are going to make him who is the author
            of your shame your friend, together with those who brought him over to
            Italy. What your fathers won by the sword, you will deliver up to the
            Lucanians and the Bruttians. What is this but
            making yourselves servants of the Macedonians? And some of you are not
            ashamed to call that peace which is really slavery!’
            
          
          When Appius had spoken, the negotiations with Kineas were broken off. He was warned immediately to
            leave the town, and to inform his king that there could be no idea of
            peace and friendship between him and the Roman people until he had left
            the shores of Italy. That was the answer of a people conquered, but not
            broken in spirit, a people prepared to stand up for their honour
            and their greatness, even to the last man. The impression which the
            Romans made on Kineas is described as
            very powerful. It is said that he compared the town of Rome to a
            temple, and the senators to kings. Indeed, the dignity, the calmness, and
            firmness of the Roman people could not have failed to convince him that
            the Romans were barbarians of a peculiar type; although in refinement
            and polish, in art and the higher enjoyments of life below the Greeks,
            still as citizens and soldiers very superior to them. The day of Heraclea
            was far from damping their courage. A new army was formed in Rome,
            probably under Kineas’ own eyes, from
            volunteers, who, full of enthusiasm, poured thither from all parts
            to fill up the gaps. The consul T. Coruncanius was recalled from Etruria. The Latins and the Italian allies showed no
            inclination to desert Rome. The colonies, the military bulwarks of Roman power,
            stood firm. Nothing was tottering in the great edifice. The Romans heard
            without ’ fear the sounds of the approaching storm.
            
          
          Pyrrhus had begun to move, probably at the same time
            at which he had sent Kineas to Rome. He directed his
            march through Lucania to Campania, and tried by a coup de main to
            seize Capua and Naples. Failing in this, he turned northwards, crossed the Volturnus and the Liris, occupied Fregellae, and
            reached, on the Latin road, Anagnia, in the
            country of the Hernicans. He nowhere met with a friendly reception. He was in
            an enemy’s country, and with every step that he made forwards the
            difficulties and the dangers of his situation increased. His army, which
            had been joined by Samnite and Lucanian hordes, was encumbered with spoils
            and numerous prisoners. It is doubtful whether he was in a condition
            to venture on a battle with Roman legions; a reverse at such a distance
            from Tarentum would have been ruin. It is nevertheless probable that not
            Pyrrhus but the Romans avoided a collision; for they knew that, even
            without a battle, the hostile army would be compelled to evacuate Latium. They
            confined themselves to harassing the enemy in the flank and rear. On all
            sides there appeared newly formed legions, so that Pyrrhus exclaimed
            in despair that he had to fight with the Hydra. Still the Romans ventured
            on no attack. The enemy marched with their spoils to Campania, where
            they passed the winter. Pyrrhus went thence to Tarentum.
            
          
          After the termination of the campaign, which, in spite
            of the important events, had brought no decision, both sides made their
            preparations for the anticipated struggle of the ensuing year. The losses
            of the Romans in dead, wounded, and prisoners had been great. They now
            sent an embassy to Pyrrhus to treat with him respecting the exchange
            or ransom of the prisoners. Pyrrhus had not yet given up the hope of
            concluding peace, and he made use of the presence of the Roman ambassadors
            to make new proposals. His negotiations with Fabricius,
            the head of the embassy, supplied the inventors and collectors of anecdotes
            with favourite topics wherewith to eulogise in the Usual manner the
            civic virtues of the Romans. Pyrrhus, who, as a Greek, naturally thought
            every man had his price, offered Fabricius, it is
            said, a large sum of money, from mere friendship and respect, which,
            however, Fabricius, proud in his poverty,
            rejected; it is even said that Pyrrhus wished him to enter into his
            service. At last he put his presence of mind to the test by placing his
            largest elephant behind a curtain and then causing the curtain to be
            drawn, so that Fabricius found himself
            immediately under the monster’s trunk and tusks. But this test also the
            undaunted Roman stood: he only smiled when the elephant began to
            roar. While Roman writers amused themselves with such silly stories,
            they neglected to investigate and to report the truth about the result of
            the embassy. According to some of them, Pyrrhus released all the prisoners
            without ransom, in the hope of inducing the Romans, by his magnanimity, to make
            peace; according to another, he released only 200 prisoners; according to a
            third, he allowed the prisoners to celebrate the feast of Saturnalia among
            their relatives at home, on condition that they should return to their
            captivity. It is said that the Roman senate accepted this with thanks, and
            threatened those with death who should break their solemn promise.
            
          
          Whatever may have been the result of the negotiations regarding
            the exchange of prisoners, Pyrrhus failed in his endeavours to conclude
            peace. It was now necessary to commence a new campaign. Pyrrhus did not, as in
            the first year, march towards Campania and Latium, the centre of the
            Roman dominions, but to Apulia, in the hope probably of conquering Venusia. Here a second great battle was fought near
            Asculum. Pyrrhus was again victorious. But the Romans were able to retire
            into their fortified camp, and lost fewer men than in the fatal battle
            of Heraclea. This sufficed for some of the mendacious annalists to represent the battle as indecisive, and even as a Roman victory; and as
            it happened that one of the Roman commanders was the consul Decius Mus,
            the story of the self-sacrifice of his father and grandfather was
            furbished up anew to suit the grandson. We shall not expect to
            find trustworthy detailed accounts of a battle which has been handled
            so freely by the successive historians, nor shall we endeavour to
            reconcile inconsistent narratives. The loss of the king is computed at
            3,505 men by Hieronymus of Cardia, a contemporary writer. This loss cannot
            be supposed to have, weakened the victorious army to such an extent as to
            prevent the vigorous continuation of the war. The expression put into the
            mouth of Pyrrhus, ‘ Another such victory and I am lost,’ is one of those
            worthless anecdotes which occupy the place of historical record. Yet we
            hear nothing of any further operations after the battle at Asculum. What
            paralysed Pyrrhus, we cannot guess. Whether, as is reported, he was
            wounded at Asculum, and for that reason remained inactive in Tarentum;
            whether the affairs of Epirus, which was threatened just then by
            an invasion of the Gauls and by domestic troubles, occupied
            his attention; whether he was already tired of the whole war in
            Italy, and was making preparations for his Sicilian campaign, we know not. One
            thing is plain, that the vigour of his attack relaxed, while the
            resistance of the Romans was on the increase. The difficulties of a war in
            an enemy’s country far from all native resources were felt more
            and more. Such a war can, indeed, only be carried on successfully when the
            population of the country are either quite neutral or sympathize with the
            foreign invader. Where that is not the case, it is only by constant and
            large reinforcements from home or by the greatest talent in a commander that a
            speedy catastrophe can be averted. Thus Agathocles and Regulus in Africa,
            Alexander of Epirus, and even Hannibal in Italy failed, in spite of all
            their success in the beginning. That the war of Pyrrhus in Italy took the
            same course is a further proof of the lukewarm disposition of the Italian
            nations, of whom it has been falsely reported that they had formed with
            him a regular alliance against Rome.
            
          
          One event had great influence on the progress of the
            war. At this time (about 279 BC), probably before the battle of Asculum,
            the Romans concluded an offensive and defensive alliance with Carthage.
            Already, seventy years before (348), these two states had concluded a
            treaty of navigation, by which they might regulate their
            commercial intercourse on amicable terms. About half a century later (306 BC)
            they renewed this treaty. Now they were united by their common interests to
            oppose the ambitious plans of King Pyrrhus, which were directed no less against
            Sicily than against Italy. Carthage had for centuries possessed settlements on
            this island. It had subjugated the western part, which lay almost opposite
            Carthage; but the chequered wars with the Sicilian Greeks had hitherto
            led to no decided success. Now at length the time seemed to have
            arrived when they might possess themselves of the whole island. After the
            death of Agathocles (286 BC) the power of Syracuse rapidly declined. Torn
            by parties, confined to the defence of their walls, the Syracusans
            seemed doomed to the yoke of Carthage, and the conquest of Syracuse would
            easily have been followed by that of all Sicily. Pyrrhus was the last hope
            for the Greeks in Sicily, and he was moved not only by sympathy for his
            countrymen, but by his own ambition and the claims which, as husband
            of the daughter of Agathocles, he might in some measure put forward
            to the inheritance of the murdered tyrant. The greater therefore his
            interest and his desire to bring the war in Italy to an end, that he might
            go to the assistance of the hard-pressed Syracusans before it was too
            late, the more was it the interest of Carthage to detain him
            in Italy. Hence this alliance with Rome—an alliance by which Rome,
            after the defeat at Heraclea and after all the successes of Pyrrhus, was
            not a little encouraged to persevere in the war. The co-operation of the
            Carthaginian fleet, which was agreed upon, was of incalculable importance
            for Rome, though, on the other hand, it was hardly advisable to give to such
            a power as Carthage an excuse for interfering in the affairs of Italy. Of the
            distrust and the mutual jealousy of the allied powers we have a
            proof in the conditions of the treaty preserved by Polybius,1 which
            prescribe minutely how and when assistance should be rendered. The same is
            evident from a statement preserved by Justin and Valerius Maximus, to the effect that when a Carthaginian fleet made its appearance on
            the coast of Latium (probably while Pyrrhus was marching upon Rome), the
            Romans declined the proffered assistance. They were placed between two
            dangers, and it was not less in their interest to hasten the departure of
            Pyrrhus from Italy than it was in the interest of the Carthaginians
            to keep him there. We cannot be far wrong in supposing that the Roman
            politicians did all in their power to shift the scene of war from Italy to
            Sicily. We may therefore readily believe what Appian reports, that the
            Romans made an agreement with Pyrrhus, in consequence of which the
            prisoners of war were exchanged and an armistice concluded. The offensive
            and defensive alliance with Carthage did not allow the Romans to conclude
            a separate peace. But they were at liberty to conclude an armistice,
            whereby they obtained freedom to act against the allies of Pyrrhus in
            Italy, whilst he had the same freedom to act against the allies of Rome in
            Sicily. We do not know whether a condition of the armistice guaranteed
            Tarentum against hostilities on the part of Rome, but it seems highly
            probable that Pyrrhus did not sacrifice this town, the safety of which
            concerned his honour no less than his interest. Milo remained in Tarentum
            with an Epirotic garrison, the son of Pyrrhus,
            the youthful Alexander, was left in Locri. The
            other Greek towns in Italy were likewise secured by Epirotic garrisons, whilst the native troops of those towns probably accompanied
            Pyrrhus to Sicily.
            
          
          In Sicily the arrival of Pyrrhus produced a rapid and complete
            change. Enthusiastically received by the Greeks as their saviour from the hands
            of the barbarians, he reconciled the hostile parties amongst them, organised
            the military force of the Greek cities, and in a short time swept the
            Carthaginians from the greater part of the island. They retired to their
            fortified places in the west, but even here they were not safe. The town
            of Eryx was stormed, Pyrrhus being the first man
            on the wall. Soon after Panormus and Ercte were taken. Lilybaeum alone resisted, being protected
            by its favourable situation and by a Carthaginian fleet. In the north-east
            of the island the Mamertines were blockaded in Messina; and all
            Sicily therefore, with the exception of these two towns, was now
            in the hands of Pyrrhus. The plan of founding a great Greek empire in
            the west seemed to be approaching realisation. The lord of Ambracia,
            Tarentum, and Syracuse, the conqueror of the Romans and Carthaginians, seemed
            to be entitled to hope that, after such results, he would succeed in
            completing his work and in establishing a lasting dominion.
            
          
          But so near the accomplishment of his plans Pyrrhus
            saw all his hopes dashed to the ground, and was deprived of all the fruits of
            his victories and labours. The flood which had borne him along began to
            ebb, and soon he found himself carried back to the point from which he had
            started. Carthage, unlike Rome, had lost courage and self-confidence, and
            had offered Pyrrhus peace and friendship, ready to give up to him the
            whole of Sicily with the sole exception of Lilybaeum. This offer Pyrrhus
            refused. He and his friends in Sicily knew that, as long as the
            Carthaginians had possession of one stronghold in Sicily, they
            would watch the first favourable opportunity to reconquer from this
            point all that they had lost. The war therefore continued. Pyrrhus contemplated
            not only the conquest of Lilybaeum but even a landing in Africa, hoping to
            realise the bold plan of his father-in-law Agathocles, who had all
            but succeeded in overthrowing the dominion of Carthage. But, in spite of
            all his efforts, he failed even to take Lilybaeum. Having continued for two
            mouths his siege operations, he was obliged to give np the attempt of
            taking the town by force. His great triumphs over the Carthaginians,
            and the universal enthusiasm of the Greeks, were now succeeded by
            discouragement, discontent, discord, and mutual complaints.
            
          
          The strict military discipline and the inforcement of unconditional obedience, which, under such
            circumstances, were more necessary than ever, appeared an
            unbearable burthen to the Sicilian Greeks, when the fitting out of
            a fleet for the African expedition demanded new efforts. Pyrrhus was
            inexorably severe, perhaps even cruel, though cruelty was not generally in
            his nature. At any rate he was accused of it by those who refused to
            submit to his commands. Fickle, inconstant, and faithless as the
            Greeks always were,1 they now opened negotiations with the Mamertines
            of Messina, and even with the Carthaginians. The newly created kingdom of
            Sicily passed away like a shadow. The Carthaginian army issued out of
            Lilybaeum to overrun the island. Once more the king of
            Epirus, summoning all his strength, encountered them and drove them
            back into their strongholds, after inflicting a bloody defeat.
            Nevertheless he seemed tired and dispirited. The war in Sicily had lost
            its charm for him when, at the end of almost three years, he found that he
            had not been able to gain even the attachment, fidelity, and ready
            cooperation of the Greeks. He saw that personal passions and the interests
            of parties were dearer to them than all national aspirations; he therefore
            turned his back upon them as soon as he found a pretext for leaving
            the island.
            
          
          The situation of his allies in Italy was sufficiently
            alarming to urge him to return. During the three years of his Sicilian expedition
            the Romans had not only recovered from the great sufferings of the disastrous
            war, but they had even begun to reconquer the ground that they had lost. The
            attempt, it is true, to punish the Samnites for the share they had taken in the
            war ended in their humiliation and severe loss; for the consuls of the
            year 277, C. Junius Brutus and P. Cornelius Rus, ravaging Samnium
            with fire and sword, and venturing too far among the mountains, had been
            attacked by the mountaineers and totally defeated. But, in spite of this
            reverse, the superiority of the Romans became more and more
            manifest. They gradually regained possession of the Greek towns which
            had been lost in the course of the war. Heraclea surrendered on obtaining
            favourable conditions. This example was followed by others. In every town
            a Roman party was astir, which demanded an alliance with Rome, as
            they had done even before the war.
            
          
          Whilst this party in the town of Croton was calling in
            the Romans, their opponents sent to Tarentum to ask Milo for aid. The Epirot
            general forthwith dispatched Nikomachus to
            Croton with a body of troops, who anticipated the Roman consul Rufinus in the
            occupation of the town, and fell upon him, inflicting a serious loss, when
            he appeared before the gates in the hope of being received within the
            walls. Rufinus, who had no prospect of taking Croton by force, forthwith
            marched in the direction of Locri, and contrived
            to make Nikomachus believe, by some pretended
            deserters, that he had friends in Locri who
            were about to surrender the town to him. Nikomachus hastened again to anticipate him, and reached Locri by a shorter way, perhaps by sea. Thus Croton was again deprived the greater part of its garrison. Rufinus immediately returned, and
              succeeded in surprising the town under cover of a mist. Soon after the Epirot
              garrison of Locri was set upon and massacred by the
              inhabitants, and the town surrendered to the Romans. Thus the whole coast, with
              the exception of Tarentum and Rhegium, was again in Roman hands. Both parties
              had arrived at the same point which they had occupied in the beginning of the
              war.
              
            
          This was the condition of affairs in Italy when
            Pyrrhus, oi listening to the entreaties of his allies, sailed, probably in in
            Italy, the autumn of 276 B.C., from the port of Syracuse. The Carthaginians lay
            in wait for him, and in a smart naval engagement he lost a number of his ships.
            Having landed on the southern extremity of Italy, he was obliged to fight his
            way through the territory of Rhegium, where the Mamertines of Messina and the
            Campanian mutineers, now masters of Rhegium, endeavoured to intercept him. If the latter thought by this act to gain the favour and pardon of Rome, they were grievously mistaken,
            for Rome could not overlook or compromise the faithlessness of her allies and
            the mutiny of her soldiers, and she was even now meditating what punishment she
            should inflict on them. Pyrrhus forced his way, with his usual good fortune and
            his accustomed bravery; he succeeded even, on his farther march to Tarentum, in
            regaining possession of the Greek towns on the coast. In Locri severe punishment was inflicted on those who had surprised the Epirotic garrison and delivered the town to the Romans. For
            the third time this unhappy town changed its masters, and, as usual, the change
            was accompanied by an internal revolution. It is impossible to imagine a more
            lamentable condition than that of these Greek towns, once so flourishing and
            now doomed to destruction. Torn by factions which had sold themselves to the
            belligerent foreign powers, they were crushed in the violent, collision which
            they had been instrumental in bringing about. Their wealth, their splendour, their large population were gone. In their
            helplessness they could not even protect themselves from the wild hordes of
            Campanian filibusters. Caulonia and Croton were laid waste and sacked by them.
            Croton, once swarming with a numerous population, dwindled now to the
            dimensions of a village, which, in a corner of the wide space encircled by the
            ancient walls, prolonged a precarious existence among the mouldering ruins of her former grandeur. Whatever treasures, the remains of forfeited
            wealth, were found in these towns were carried off either by the Romans or by
            the Epirots. Pyrrhus, on this occasion, plundered
            even the sacred treasure in the temple of Persephone at Locri,
            and, it is related, was only induced to restore the spoils when his ships were
            driven back into the harbour by a storm.
            
          
          After an absence of almost three years, Pyrrhus
            appeared again in Tarentum at the head of an army which, in point of numbers,
            was equal to that with which he had commenced the war against Rome, five years
            before. But the quality of his troops was different. In the place of his
            devoted Epirotic veterans, whose bones were now
            bleaching on the battlefields of Italy and Sicily, his ranks were filled with
            foreign mercenaries, or men pressed into his service, both Greeks and
            barbarians. Many of his best officers had fallen in battle. A different spirit
            animated the army and the king. The enthusiasm and the hope of victory had
            given place to the depression of spirits which arises from failure and
            shattered hopes. The actions of the king betrayed a want of firmness and
            decision ; he was more inclined to severity, contrary to his original disposition.
            His good spirit seemed to have forsaken him. Kineas was no longer living; it seems that he had died in Sicily. A second friend and
            adviser like him Pyrrhus found no more.
            
          
          The return of the king of Epirus produced a deep impression
            in Rome. Here also the enthusiasm had vanished with which, after the battle of
            Heraclea, the young men that occasion had vied with each other in enrolling
            themselves in the newly-raised legions. Instead of zeal and eagerness for the
            service of the country, a general apathy was manifested. It was necessary for
            the authorities to resort to the most rigorous measures and punishments, in
            order to compel the reluctant to military service. The general terror
            increased, as usual, the superstition of the people, and made them see the
            anger of the gods, in extraordinary phenomena. The clay statue of Jupiter on
            the roof of the Capitoline temple was struck by lightning and its head hurled
            into the Tiber. We may be sure that days of supplication and prayer were
            appointed to calm the terrified spirits of the people, and to implore the favour of the gods. Meanwhile the armies took the field for
            the last decisive campaign. Whilst one consular army, under L. Cornelius Lentulus, marched into Lucania, where in all probability it
            had to encounter only some irregular troops of Samnites and Lucanians, the
            other army, under Manius Curius,
            suddenly fell in, near Beneventum, with the main body
            of the enemy, under the personal command of the king. It seemed advisable to
            avoid an engagement, until the consul Lentulns could
            approach with his army, for the support of Curius.
            The Romans therefore occupied a fortified position on the hills. Pyrrhus, being
            anxious to anticipate the arrival of the second Roman army, ventured, with his
            unwieldy phalanx and his untrustworthy troops, to storm the position of the
            Romans. The circumstances were all unfavourable to
            Pyrrhus. Neither the phalanx, nor his cavalry, nor his elephants could act with
            advantage on the uneven ground. A total repulse was inevitable. The elephants
            were thrown into disorder on being received by the Romans with burning
            projectiles. Two of them were killed, four were taken, to be led in procession
            in the triumph which Manius Curius celebrated for this glorious victory.
            
          
          The army of Pyrrhus was shattered to pieces. He had no
            prospect now of being able to continue the war any longer. Italy offered him no
            resources. Neither the Samnites,
              nor the Lucanians, nor the Italian Greeks appear to have been able or disposed
              to make further efforts. Pyrrhus applied in vain for assistance to Macedonia,
              Syria, or Egypt. Deserted on all sides, maligned and threatened, he had no
              choice but to give up the unequal contest, which nothing but his eminent
              military talent had enabled him to carry on with credit for five years. He took
              leave with a heavy heart of the land which he had come to deliver from the
              barbarians, and where he had hoped to establish a great kingdom. Yet he did not
              abandon all his plans at once. To give up Tarentum would have been equivalent
              to surrendering if to the Romans. He therefore left Milo and his son Helenus in
              Tarentum with a strong garrison, and embarked with an army of 8,000 foot and
              600 horse to return to his own country; not, however, there to repose’ in
              peace, but to plunge into new ventures one after another, to stretch out his
              hands for the throne of Macedonia, and at last to fall in the wild uproar of
              battle. He fought for a while very successfully against Antigonus Gonatas in
              Macedonia. Then he was induced to make an expedition into Peloponnesus ; here
              he failed in a desperate attack on Sparta, and when thereupon he turned against
              Argos, to wrest it from Antigonus, he was hit by a tile thrown from a roof by a
              woman. Lying on the ground, wounded and helpless, he was recognised by a wretch and murdered. Alkyoneus, the son of
              Antigonus, hastened in triumph to lay his head at his father’s feet, but the
              king of Macedonia, when he saw the features of his enemy, hid his face and
              reproved the barbarity of the young man. He was overcome by the sudden change
              of fortune, and remembered sorrowfully his father Demetrius and his grandfather
              Antigonus, both of whom fortune had raised high to let them fall low. He caused
              the remains of Pyrrhus to be honourably buried, and
              treated his son Helenus as a friend and protector.
              
            
          The life of Pyrrhus is a true picture of the time, a
            time Hellenic full of the grandest ventures, of violent passions and unsatisfied
            ambition. The successors of Alexander the Great were not worse than other
            conquerors. If their deeds had not been described by tedious historians, but
            sung by inspired poets, they would stand before our eyes in the brilliant light
            of Homeric heroes. It was not a happy period for the welfare of the peoples.
            They were the helpless booty for which the ambitious princes fought. Their
            wealth, their culture, their morals deteriorated. The Hellenic civilisation, as it spread eastward into Asia, was
            adulterated by foreign elements, and in the west it was gradually crushed out
            by barbarism. A revolution took place in the principles which regulated social
            and political order. The small civic communities, in which the Hellenic civilisation had sprung up and flourished, were absorbed by
            larger states. In the east there were formed the various monarchies of Syria
            and Asia Minor, where the Greek spirit of personal freedom received a strong
            admixture of oriental despotism. In the west was growing up the empire of the
            Homan republic, where fixed rules equally repressed personal greatness and
            personal government. What military and political organisation was able to accomplish in a contest with the greatest personal qualities had
            been shown in the course of the first collision between Homans and Greeks. The
            next three centuries completed the triumph of the Homan arms and of Homan policy,
            and at the same time the triumph of the Greek mind.
              
            
          
             
          
          
             
          
          
             
          
          CHAPTER XVII.
                
          
          THE CONQUEST OF ITALY.
                
          
          
             
          
          The decisive battle of Beneventum compelled Pyrrhus to evacuate Italy, and removed
            all the apprehensions which the Romans had entertained after the first and the
            second Extension landing of Pyrrhus. Their perseverance, backed by the of
            Roman solidity of their power, had prevailed. They were now enabled to
            gather at leisure the fruits of their hard-won victory, conscious of their
            superior strength and perfectly sure of the result. The Sabellian nations
            were punished for the hostile disposition which they had manifested
            by supporting Pyrrhus. They were humbled by several defeats, and a
            new curb was applied to keep them in subjection. In the midst of Samnium,
            where the great victory had been gained over Pyrrhus, a colony
            was established in 268 BC, and the name of the town, for a good omen,
            changed from Maleventum into Beneventum. Even before
            this period, in 273, the maritime colony of Pastum was established on the site of the Greek town of Posidonia, which had been
            destroyed by the Bruttians; Cosa, situated on
            the western coast, and sometime after the important town of Ariminum, on
            the Adriatic, received a garrison of colonists for the protection of the
            country conquered from the Senonian Gauls. It became more and more
            evident that the Romans aspired to dominion over the coasts and seas, and
            this tendency was the natural result of the preceding contests, which had drawn
            the Homans into the vicinity of the Adriatic, the Tarentine and Sicilian
            waters. It was not possible for Rome to remain entirely a continental power.
            The weakness of the Roman fleet had become apparent in the war
            with Tarentum. An alliance with Carthage had become necessary for the
            purpose of securing the co-operation of the Carthaginian fleet. If Rome
            wished to deliver herself from this dependence, and to secure the
            possession of the newly-conquered maritime towns, it was necessary that
            she should aspire to naval power and to an equality with the great
            maritime nations of the Mediterranean. The first steps in this direction
            were now taken by the foundation of the three maritime colonies.
            
          
          But the key-stones of the edified were still wanting.
            The dominion of Rome over the continent of Italy could not be considered
            complete or secure so long as Tarentum and Rhegium were in hostile hands.
            How important was the possession of a single fortified maritime town had
            just been shown in Sicily, where the Carthaginians had lost
            every place except Lilybaeum, and were enabled by the secure footing
            which Lilybaeum gave them rapidly to reconquer almost the whole island. In
            a similar manner, Pyrrhus, or some other enemy of Rome, might at any time
            issue from Tarentum to attack the Homan dominions, and the days of
            Heraclea and Asculum might be repeated. The Romans, therefore, in the year
            272, made great efforts to gain possession of Tarentum. Again they
            acted in concert with their own party inside the town, for, just as
            in the beginning of the war, they felt unable to take by a regular siege a
            maritime town which they could not blockade at the same time on the sea
            side. The Homan party in Tarentum made the attempt to overpower the
            opposite party and the Epirotic garrison. But their
            attempt failed. They were obliged to leave the town and occupy one of the
            neighbouring places, whence they continued their hostilities against
            the garrison of Tarentum. A Roman army, under the consul Papirius, joined
            them and began to blockade the town on the land side. At the same time a
            Carthaginian fleet appeared before the harbour, ready to assist the
            opposite party. Like two wild animals ready to pounce upon their prey
            and to snatch it from each other, the Romans and the Carthaginians each
            tried to get possession of Tarentum. Rome had sought the Carthaginian
            alliance in order to rid herself of Pyrrhus with Carthaginian aid. But she
            was determined not to allow the Carthaginians to obtain a footing in
            Italy as they had done in Sicily. They looked upon the allied fleet before
            Tarentum as if it were the fleet of a rival or an enemy, and they were
            right in doing so, and in supposing that its object was not to take
            Tarentum and then to hand it over to them. It is very curious that
            the state of things was almost precisely the same as that which had
            existed in 282 BC. The Romans had hopes of securing the possession of
            Tarentum by the co-operation of their party within the town, but a foreign
            power was on the point of anticipating them. If on this as on
            the previous occasion, the decision had been in the hands of the
            democrats of Tarentum, the town would have been surrendered to the
            Carthaginians; for the leaders of the Tarentine people had to expect the
            most severe retribution from the Romans if they got possession of the
            place. But the democrats were no longer masters of the
            situation. Milo, with his Epirotic garrison,
            held the castle and had unlimited sway. He cared little for the wishes of
            the one political party or the other. As soon as he had lost all hope
            of keeping the town intrusted to him for his own sovereign, the question
            for him was, which of his enemies would offer him the most favourable
            conditions. Whilst Pyrrhus was alive, a second Italian expedition was
            at least possible. Now the news arrived of his death, and it spread
            among his faithful soldiers discouragement and fear. Milo, despairing of
            relief, could not do better than preserve to the son of his sovereign an
            army which was now useless in Italy. The Romans showed themselves ready to
            offer. the most acceptable terins. They allowed the garrison to march out of
            Tarentum, carrying with them their arms and all their booty. Probably
            the leaders of the democratic party left the town at the same time,
            as they had to dread the revenge of the Romans and of their political
            antagonists, who now returned to power. The town and citadel of Tarentum
            were given up to the Romans. The Carthaginians, after the failure of
            their plan to get possession of the town, sailed back to
            Carthage, and when the Romans complained of the appearance of their
            fleet before Tarentum, the Carthaginian senate cast the responsibility on
            the commander of the fleet, declaring that he had had no authority to
            approach so near the town Tarentum, deprived of her arms, her ships,
            and her walls, had from henceforth a Roman garrison in the citadel,
            and was treated with forbearance in consideration of the services of the
            aristocratic party. It is true the prosperity of Tarentum was gone for
            ever. Its trade was more and more drawn to the new port of Brundusium. But, like the other Greek towns under Roman
            dominion, Tarentum retained a shadow of its former republican freedom
            in its local self-government.
            
          
          After the fall of Tarentum, the long-delayed
            retribution overtook at last the freebooters of Rhegium. Since the Roman
            legion consisting of Campanian allies had treacherously seized the unhappy
            town, and had cast aside the allegiance to Rome, along with all regard to
            decency and humanity, Rhegium had become simply a robber state. The
            mutineers of Rhegium, joined by their kinsmen of Messina, who were guilty
            of a similar crime, lived by surprising and plundering their neighbours.
            They had at last attacked Croton, cut down the Roman garrison,
            and sacked and devastated the city. About this time Hiero had
            gained supreme power over Syracuse. He supported the Romans with troops
            and materials of war, to enable them to carry on the siege of Rhegium with
            greater energy. It was a severe struggle, for the mutineers were well
            aware what punishment was in store for them if they fell into the hands of the
            Romans. The Carthaginians might have assisted them by sea, but this
            would have been in open violation of their treaty with Rome, which
            they did not venture upon after having failed to get possession of the far
            more important city of Tarentum and after they had solemnly declared they
            had not entertained any ambitious views with regard to the latter
            city. The siege of Rhegium was therefore carried on
            without interruption. The town was at last taken by storm.
            The mutineers who did not fall sword in hand were
            immediately executed. Only three hundred of them, probably
            the remnants of the Campanian legion, were sent to Rome in chains,
            and scourged and beheaded in the market-place. Their bodies were cast to
            the dogs. Thus Rome avenged her offended majesty, and punished the
            violation of the military oath, to give a warning to those of her
            subjects who might possibly entertain similar projects.
            
          
          The deserted Rhegium was restored to the old
            inhabitants that still survived. These collected gradually from all sides. The
            favourable position of the town no doubt attracted others. Rhegium revived
            once more. It obtained its local independence and favourable terms
            of union with Rome, and it appears that the Greek language and Greek
            customs survived for some centuries in this locality.
            
          
          The struggle was now ended. Without meeting more than
            isolated resistance, Rome now ruled supreme over the whole of Italy from
            Ariminum to the Sicilian Straits. The Etruscans, nominally free and
            independent, were protected by Rome alone from the Gauls, yet in
            reality they were the subjects of the Roman republic. Roman influence
            was supreme in the internal government of the Etruscan cities. It
            supported the aristocratic government, and wherever it was threatened, as for
            example in Volsinii, 265 BC, it interfered with force
            of arms and ruled the country by means of these aristocracies, who
            were in reality the servants and creatures of Rome. The Sabellian
            nations who had been subjected to the Roman power during the last two
            generations lost their international independence. In their foreign policy
            they were henceforth entirely dependent on Rome : Rome’s friends and
            enemies were theirs. In so far therefore they had lost their original
            sovereignty. They were no longer their own masters, and yet they entered
            the Roman state neither as slaves nor as tributary subjects. They all of
            them retained their local self-government, their hereditary laws and
            manners; they became members of a great confederation which protected them,
            gave them peace and tranquillity, and asked of them only such services as the
            military security of the new empire required. The members of
            the confederation were bound, in fixed proportions, to send
            their contingents to the Roman army. Nor was their strength taxed too
            highly; Rome demanded from the aggregate of her allies hardly more troops
            than were furnished by her own citizens. Besides arming and paying these
            men, the allies had no burdens to bear. They paid no tribute.
            Though many of them suffered by the confiscation of part of
            their domain land, as for instance the Bruttians,
            from whom half of the forest of Sila was taken,
            and those in whose territory Roman colonies were established, yet the
            Roman republic did not systematically plunder them. It seems not
            improbable that, in all material respects, they were much better off under
            Roman rule than in the time of their independence, when the everlasting
            small wars made the accumulation of wealth impossible. The Greek towns
            on the coast were in a similar dependence on Rome. The terms on which
            they were admitted into the confederation differed in detail, and were
            more favourable in some cases, those of Naples and Heraclea for instance,
            than in others. But on the whole they also retained their self-government,
            chap. their jurisdiction, language, and customs. Their military services were
            regulated and were confined, it seems, to the furnishing and arming of
            ships. The period of their national splendour as Greek cities was over,
            but they now began to exercise a powerful influence on Borne and
            Italy as the chosen missionaries of Hellenic culture. The previous
            intercourse between Romans and Greeks had been isolated and had produced
            but trifling results. The antiquity of this intercourse has been greatly
            exaggerated by both Greek and Latin writers, both of whom took
            a pride in believing that Romans and Greeks were of a kindred race
            and had from very ancient times known each other. In truth, however, a
            regular intercourse between the two nations began at the present period,
            and the effects of it were soon visible in the religion, customs,
            and literature of Rome.
            
          
          For the purpose of binding together their conquests
            and Latin of penetrating them with the spirit of Roman citizens, the Romans
            made use of their own peculiar system of colonisation. Since the subjection of Latium,
            they had begun more and more to send out, not colonies of
            Roman citizens, but colonies of Latins, who spread over the whole of
            Italy the same sort of confederation which had existed .originally between Rome
            and Latium, and were the connecting link between the ruling city and the
            various conquered nations. The Latin colonies consisted partly of Latins
            and partly of Roman citizens, who sacrificed their higher privileges as
            Romans for the material advantages which were offered to them in the colonies,
            and which consisted chiefly in assignments of land. They retained the
            private rights of Romans, and could under certain conditions acquire the full
            franchise. But their public rights they exercised in their new homes,
            which, as copies of the Roman community, had each a senate, a popular
            assembly, and magistrates. By their descent, their language, and the
            difficulty of their position in a conquered country and in the midst of a
            hostile population whose lands they occupied, they were of course compelled to
            cling closely to Rome. They were in some sense members of the
            ruling people, and in another sense they were, with regard to Rome,
            in a position similar to that of the allied Sabellian and Greek towns. The
            Latins and the allies furnished for every Roman legion an equal number of
            foot, a double or treble number of horse. It was a natural
            consequence that this political community, coupled with the active intercourse
              between the colonies and the other towns, produced a uniformity of sentiment
              and interests, which led to a gradual assimilation of these various kinds
              of Roman subjects, and to a most intimate union of them with
              one another and with Rome.
              
            
          The most important Latin colonies which were
            established since the organisation of Latium in 336 BC till the commencement of
            the first Punic war 264 BC, were Fregellae, Interamna,
            Sora, in the country of the Volscians, Cales, Suessa Aurunca, Cosa in Campania,
            Luceria and Venusia in Apulia, Alba in the
            country of the Marsians, Narnia in Umbria, Carseoli in the country of the Aequians, Saticula, Aesernia, and Beneventum in Samnium, Hatria, Castrum
            Novum and Firmum in Picenum, Paestum in Lu-cania, Ariminum in the country of the Gauls. If we
            bear in mind that to some of these places 4,000, 6,000, nay to one
            20,000, colonists were sent, we shall be able to appreciate the importance of
            these numerous foundations within a comparatively short time. By this
            wholesale emigration of Latin citizens Italy was Romanized. The kindred nations
            of Sabellian descent easily and quickly adopted Roman customs, and
            exchanged their local dialects for the Latin tongue. The old peculiarities
            disappeared more and more in the uniformity of Roman customs and
            institutions which now spread over the whole peninsula. The time was
            not far distant when an Ennius, born and grown up
            in Apulia, should sing in Latin hexameters the great exploits of the
            Roman people. The confederate nations, as well those of foreign origin as also
            the Latins, formed as it were the outer circle or shell of the Roman empire.
            The kernel consisted of the body of genuine Roman citizens.
            The double division of the state, the contrast between patricians and
            plebeians, was repeated on a larger scale, and was spread over the whole
            of Italy when it had ceased in Rome itself to be of any political
            importance. The Roman citizens, whether patricians or plebeians, now
            succeeded to the exclusive possession of political rights from which
            the Latins and the other allies were excluded. This exclusion was
            inevitable so long as the newly-formed empire retained the old
            constitution, which was adapted only for the government of a small
            territory or a single town. It was physically impossible to assemble on the
            Forum the population of the whole of Italy. A line had to be drawn for the
            purpose, of separating the sovereign people of Rome from those who were
            members of the state only as allies. This line included the most southern
            part of Etruria, almost the whole of Latium, and parts of the land of
            the Volscians. It was, in truth, too large already, and placed the
            representation of the more distant parts in the hands of a few who had the
            means and the leisure to devote themselves to the political life of the
            capital. An equal division of civil rights and duties, even if it had been
            contemplated, would have been impossible, unless the town constitution of
            the republic had been changed into a representative constitution or into a
            monarchy. The solution of the difficulty by the representative system
            seemed to be very obvious; for, if from the senates of the
            separate towns deputies had been sent to the Roman senate, a
            representative body would have been formed. But the essence of republican
            institutions appeared to the ancients to consist in a direct participation of
            every member of the community in the exercise of sovereign power. It
            was therefore impossible to do away with the public assemblies of the
            Roman people for the purposes of legislation, and the election of
            magistrates and for the highest judicial functions, and it was equally
            impossible to swell the people of Rome by the aggregate of all the peoples of
            Italy.
            
          
          Nor was this by any means intended, if it had been
            possible. The city of Rome and the men who constituted the Roman tribes
            had acquired by force of arms the dominion over Italy, and they had no
            intention of sharing it with others. Rome remained not merely the head,
            but the sovereign head, of the confederation. The Roman senate alone
            conducted the foreign policy; the magistrates elected in the Roman Forum
            or in the Campus Martius administered the government, raised the revenue,
            superintended the census and the distribution of the military burdens. The
            Roman people claimed for itself the right of legislating for the whole
            state, a right to which all local rights and privileges were expected to
            bend. The conduct of the common affairs of the confederation was centred
            in Rome, and not liable to be influenced by the special interests, wishes,
            or opposition of the allies. It was determined by one interest alone, the
            interest of Rome, and to this interest the wishes and claims of the allies
            were subordinated without hesitation. Such a government would have been an
            unbearable tyranny if the Romans had been addicted to the modern vice of
            governing too much, or if they had cruelly or recklessly drained the
            resources of their allies for their own benefit. They did neither the
            one nor the other. They demanded no services but military aid in war,
            and they left the regulation of all internal affairs to local
            self-government. The systematic spoliation which the proconsuls and the
            farmers of the public revenue introduced at a later period was yet
            unknown. For a long time the Italians did not feel their inferiority to
            the Roman citizens to be an injustice and a hardship. For the present
            they were firmly attached to Rome, and this attachment is a proof that the
            Roman dominion was felt to be a benefit.
            
          
          The body of Roman citizens consisted of three classes.
            First, those who inhabited Rome itself or the country tribes and who
            constituted the governing people; secondly, those citizens who had
            emigrated into Roman (not Latin) colonies (coloniae civium Romanorym), who
            retained all their civil rights, hut, on account of their absence from Rome, were
            unable to exercise them. Thirdly, those citizens who possessed only the
            private rights and not the public franchise (cives sine suffragio), and were in reality
            subjects waiting for the time to be admitted to all the privileges of
            Roman citizens. The towns on which this lesser privilege was conferred, and of
            which the chief were Caere, Anagnia,
            and other communities in the countries of the Hernicans, Volscians, and
            Campanians, were more limited in their self-government. The Roman law was
            introduced among them, and the jurisdiction passed into the hands
            of a prefect sent from Rome, whence they received the name of
            prefectures. The people of these towns served in the Roman legions, and
            shared all the burdens of the Roman citizens, although they were not
            admitted to their political rights. Only their local administration was
            left in their hands. They were, therefore, almost in the same
            position as the so-called confederate states in the more distant
            parts of Italy ; but by their greater proximity to Rome, by being included
            in the Roman census, by being draughted into the
            Roman legions, and by the use of the Roman law, they were far more
            intimately connected with Rome. Accordingly, although they were called Roman citizens,
            their position was less free and satisfactory, and it is no matter of
            surprise that a few towns in the country of the Hernicans, who had the
            option of being admitted into this category of Roman citizens, preferred
            to remain confederate towns.
            
          
          The Roman republic consisted therefore of citizens and
            Roman allies. The citizens were subdivided into—1st, citizens with the full
            franchise; 2ndly, citizens in the Roman colonies; 3rdly, citizens without
            political rights. The allies were, 1st,  Latins, in some old Latin
              towns such as Praeneste and Tibur, and in the Latin colonies; and, 2ndly,
              Sabellian and Greek towns enjoying municipal self-government, but subject to
              furnish troops to the Roman army, or ships to the Roman fleet, and
              deprived of a political intercourse with other nations. The several towns
              of Etraria were nominally sovereign, but their
              political dependence on Rome was such that we may look upon them as de facto members of the great Roman confederation.
              
            
          Of the population of the federal territory we have no
            means of speaking with accuracy. Enumerations deserving of credit existed
            only of Rome itself; of the several Italian populations and of the Greek
            towns we know nothing but what we can gather from occasional statements of
            the strength of their armies and the numbers reported to have been slain
            in battle. It is evident that such statements cannot be trusted. They are in
            general exaggerated, and the exaggeration increases with the more recent
            historians. Even with regard to the battles of Pyrrhus we have no
            trustworthy accounts of numbers, although contemporary writers could
            consult the reports of King Pyrrhus himself. Hieronymus, who wrote at
            the same time, gives the number of Romans killed in the battle of Asculnm as 6,000, that of the Epirotes as 3,505;
            whereas later Roman writers state that Pyrrhus lost 20,000 men, and the
            Romans only 6,000. If such uncertainty prevails in the accounts of the war of
            Pyrrhus, what can we expect of the statements with regard to
            the Samnite wars? If we add up the numbers of slain Samnites reported by
            Livy, we are startled by the result; for no war of modern times, even
            among the most powerful nations, ever resulted in such wholesale
            slaughter. The exaggeration is obvious. We cannot believe that
            the mountains of central Italy, where the Sabines and their kindred
            races, the Marsians, Vestinians, Pelignians, and further south where the
            Samnites lived, were able to support a dense population. These mountains were
            then and are now to a great extent unproductive. The breeding of
            cattle was the chief resource of the inhabitants. Agriculture was not practised
            on a large scale, and therefore there were no means for the subsistence of
            large numbers. The climate and geography of their country explain to some
            extent the restlessness of the Sabellians, their wanderings, and their
            expeditions for plunder or conquest. The legend of the sacred spring has
            reference to this state of things. No doubt it often happened that numerous
            bands left the country to escape the misery of hunger and to obtain by
            plunder the means of living which the sterile soil refused them at home.
            This poverty of the country leads us to reject as idle tales what is
            related of the gold and silver ornaments of the Samnites. The nations of
            central Italy were poor, not because they were virtuous and abstemious, as
            the moralising writers of a later period delighted to relate, for the purpose of
            contrasting the luxury and the vices of their contemporaries: they were poor
            because in their country the sources of national wealth were wanting, and
            because, instead of cultivating a peaceable and profitable intercourse
            with their neighbours, they lived in continual hostility with them and
            among themselves. Under such circumstances the. population cannot have
            been dense.
            
          
          The districts along the coast, especially of Campania and
            many parts of Larger Greece, were, when compared with the mountainous
            interior, exceedingly fertile, and colonies, consequently well peopled.
            They were covered with several large and a great number of small cities.
            Among them Capua was pre-eminent by its wealth and population. Of the
            extraordinary prosperity of the Greek colonies wonderful stories were
            related. Croton and Sybaris are said to have led armies into the field
            consisting of hundreds of thousands of men. Even so late as at the
            beginning of the war with Rome, the single city of Tarentum could
            dispose of a force of 20,000 foot and 2,000 horse. However much we may be
            inclined to suspect these accounts of exaggeration, we shall yet have no
            reason to doubt their substance on the whole. Even after the numerous
            devastations and butcheries of the last unhappy years it is probable that
            the fertile districts of southern Italy attracted again and again a
            numerous population, and more especially Campania, both on account of
            its superior fertility and because it seems to have suffered
            less than the more southern parts.
            
          
          Of the number of Roman citizens we can speak with more
            certainty, because the enumerations of the census of this period have been
            authentically preserved. About the year 33, after the great Latin war, the
            number of citizens is stated to have been 165,000. Since then the numbers
            grew rapidly, and amounted towards the end of the Samnite wars to 250,000,
            and at the end of the period to 280,000 or 290,000 men capable of bearing
            arms. In those numbers are included, however, not only the
            Homan citizens enjoying the full franchise, but also the citizens of
            the second class, especially the Campanians. If we reckon the number of
            old men, women, and children to have been five times that of the men in
            the vigour of life, we find that the total number of free Romans
            was not much more than about a million and a half. Supposing that the
            slaves amounted to about half a million, and the foreigners settled in
            Rome to a few thousand, the total population of Rome and her immediate
            territory was little more than two millions. How many of these lived
            in the city of Rome itself we have no means of telling. The statements of
            the enumerations made in the time of the kings and the first years of the
            republic are not to be relied on; otherwise we might infer from them
            what the population of the town and the immediate neighbourhood could have
            been. If we consider the extent of territory over which the population of about
            two millions was spread, and which extended from the Ciminian hill in
            Etruria over the whole of Latium as far as Campania, and eastward as far
            as the country, of the Sabines and Marsians,—if we bear in mind that at that
            time Latium was covered with a number of small hut populous cities, and
            that Campania had probably a still denser population, we shall come to the
            conclusion that the city of Rome itself could hardly have contained
            more than about 200,000 souls, a number which would make Rome the
            most populous Italian city of the time.
            
          
          CHAPTER XVIII.
                
          
          CONDITION OF THE ROMAN PEOPLE BEFORE THE BEGINNING OF
            THE VARS WITH CARTHAGE.
                
          
          
             
          
          Having followed the political development of the Roman
            people to the time when the republican institutions reached their
            maturity, and when the whole of Italy was incorporated with their
            dominion, we will now try to draw a sketch of the condition of the Roman
            people, of their social and intellectual life previous to the
            beginning of the long struggle with Carthage. Our information with
            regard to this side of the national life of the Romans is indeed still
            more scanty than that which has been preserved of political transactions. Many
            questions must remain unanswered, but, imperfect as our sketch will
            be, it will yet indicate the principal features and the general outlines
            of the development which the Romans had attained at this period of their
            existence.
            
          
          The religion of Home, as it appeared in the regal
            period, as well with regard to its external form as to its
            inmost character, was the product of a development of many generations
            which preceded the origin of the civil community. At the time when the primeval
            inhabitants of Italy did not yet form large political communities,
            but lived in small groups formed by families, houses, or tribes, more
            or less independent of each other, every house had its own gods and its
            peculiar worship. The hearth was the altar, the father of the family the
            priest. None but the members of a family shared in the worship of the
            family deity, and none but they were objects of its care and protection.
            In proportion, as families united and formed larger communities, there
            arose common sanctuaries as religious symbols of political union. The
            foundation of a temple of Vesta, and the lighting of a sacred fire on the common
            hearth marked the commencement of a new commonwealth. It is for this
            reason that Romulus is represented as the son of a vestal virgin. The
            dominion of the Etruscans introduced the worship of the
            Capitoline Jupiter, and placed it at the head of the Roman state religion.
            The worship of Ceres united the plebeians into a political body. The
            league of the Romans with the Latins was ratified by their worshipping in
            common Jupiter Latiaris on the summit of the
            Alban mountain.
            
          
          As the state was enlarged by conquest, the number of
            the national deities increased. The polytheistic religions of foreign antiquity
            were not adverse to the reception of strange gods. The protecting deity of a
            conquered town or of a subjected people was received into the circle of
            the national gods. There was no material difference between the
            religious conceptions of the various Italian nations, so that
            the religions system of one state was not disturbed by
            the introduction of deities belonging to another. Though the names by
            which the different peoples designated their gods varied greatly, yet the
            fundamental notions were the same, and the foreign elements easily and
            rapidly blended with the native.
            
          
          Not only from the neighbouring Italian countries, but from
            Greece also new deities were imported to Rome. The received narrative does not hesitate
            to assign the deities. reception of Greek modes of worship to the very oldest period,
              long before any regular intercourse took place between Greeks and Romans.
                These statements originate in the desire to make it appear that Rome was a
                  Greek town, or at least partly Greek, a desire which has led
                  to numerous misrepresentations. Hence the fable that, in prehistoric
                  times, even long before the foundation of Rome, the Greek Herakles, in the
                  course of his wanderings, came to the banks of the Tiber, and that an altar
                  was erected there in his honour. There was worshipped in Rome a
                  genuine Sabine deity called Semo-Sancus,
                  identical with Jupiter This deity was identified with Herakles, and
                  the forms of worship at his altar were assimilated to those of the Greek
                  demigod.—In a similar manner the Greek Apollo is said to have been known
                  in Rome in the regal period. The second Tarquinius, it is
                  alleged, sent an embassy to Delphi to consult the oracle; the
                  same was done at the time of the last war with Veii, 358 BC. Apollo
                  is said to have had a temple in Rome as early as the year 431 BC, but this
                  date is too early by eighty years, and the worship of Apollo was not
                  recognised by the state before the second Punic war, when the Apollinarian
                  games were established.—The Sibylline books of prophecy were composed in
                  the Greek language and introduced from Greece. But before their
                  introduction there had existed in Rome native Italian prophecies of a
                  similar kind, which were partly amalgamated with and partly superseded by
                  those of foreign growth. As the authority of the Sibylline books was
                  supposed to increase with their reputed age, the keepers of them
                  endeavoured to make it appear that they were brought to Rome at the time
                  of the Tarquins— Serious doubts are suggested by the story which refers
                  to the introduction of the worship of Castor and Pollux. The legend
                  was that these genuine Greek twin-gods came to the assistance of the
                  Romans in the great battle of Regillus (496 BC), and that in consequence a
                  temple was built for them on the Roman Forum. Unfortunately we have
                  no evidence to show when this temple was really erected. Perhaps it was
                  originally dedicated, not to the Greek heroes Kastor and Polydeukes (Pollux), but to the genuine Italian
                  deities, called Lares Prastites,
                  who bad some resemblance to the Greek heroes and were easily identified
                  with them.
                  
                
          The first introduction of a Greek deity which is
            historically certain beyond all doubt took place in the year 291 towards the
            end of the third Samnite war. A contagious disease had ravaged Rome. The
            Sibylline books were consulted, and on their advice an embassy was
            sent to Epidaurus in Peloponnesus, for the purpose of bringing away
            the healing god Asklepios. The sacred serpent
            from the temple of the god, it is said, willingly followed
            the ambassadors on to their ship, and when this had sailed into the
            Tiber and was nearing Rome, the serpent swam to the island in the river,
            where a temple was erected afterwards to the god Aesculapius. This solemn
            reception of an inferior deity like Aesculapius, resolved by a formal decree
            of the senate and carried into effect with ostentation, contrasts
            surprisingly with the introduction of the service of Apollo, which took
            place noiselessly and quietly, so that the inference seems justified that
            the latter was effected by the gradual assimilation of a national deity
            with the Greek god of light.
            
          
          Simultaneously with the reception of foreign gods, it
            State appears that the worship of several deities, which had been peculiar to
            individual families, was taken up by the community at large. Appius Claudius,
            the bold reformer, who admitted the great mass of half-citizens and
            freedmen to the full franchise, caused the service of Hercules,
            which had been confined to the family of the Potitii,
            to be taken up by the state. We are not informed if the same
            change was effected with regard to other family cults. It is a reform
            which shows that the state as such asserted more and more its superiority
            over the various parts, such as families and houses, which had combined to
            form it, and which at an earlier period had retained many of the functions of
            independent sovereign communities.
            
          
          Whilst the objects of the public worship at Rome were multiplied,
            no essential change took place in the religious conceptions of the people
            and in the external forms of worship. Religion and morality were still
            considered to consist in the observance of a complicated system
            of ceremonies, and the relation of man to God was viewed more in the
            light of legal than of moral obligations; the gods were entitled to certain
            stipulated services, and man, in his turn, duly discharging these duties,
            was considered equally entitled to the consideration and protection of
            the gods. Religion exercised no influence whatever on the actions of
            individuals or of the state, because the heart and the conscience were not
            touched by it. The sense of justice was blunted by exclusive attention to
            mere formalities. The spirit succumbed to the letter. When war was
            declared, the strict formalities of the ritual prescribed by the fetiales were observed. If nothing was neglected in
            the mode of formally announcing hostilities, the war was considered just
            and the Roman people believed themselves entitled to claim the assistance of
            the gods as a due. This scrupulous attention to prescribed forms caused
            a serious difficulty when the war with Pyrrhus broke out. It was
            prescribed that the fetiales should proceed to
            the frontier of the hostile territory, and, after repeating
            the formal declaration of war, should throw a spear on it. The land
            of King Pyrrhus, however, lay far distant across the sea; how was it
            possible to comply with the strict form of the law? The mode adopted to
            solve the difficulty was characteristic. A field in the neighbourhood of
            Rome was purchased by an Epirot and declared to be hostile land. Now
            the spear could be duly thrown on it, and the Roman people had the
            conviction that they were waging a just war.
            
          
          The sophistry with which the conscience of the Romans
            extricated itself from the toils of the ceremonial law, enabled them to
            preserve the old forms long after they had ceased to have any meaning or
            even to be respected. From year to year they were felt to be more
            troublesome in proportion as public and private life lost their
            old simplicity and monotony. When religion was employed more and more
            as a political engine for the purpose of thwarting progress or for
            supporting the influence of faction, the people, in spite of their
            superstitious regard for old institutions and forms, began to pay less
            attention to what they had formerly respected as divine commands. Yet
            even then the old ceremonies were not abolished. The auguries, the
            sacrifices, and formal prayers were scrupulously repeated, even when they had
            ceased to command respect or to satisfy any religious cravings. The
            obstructions to a liberal development of the constitution which religion
            opposed were overcome but slowly and with difficulty. As the sovereignty
            of the state passed from the . assembly of the patrician curiae to that of
            the centuries which contained both orders of citizens, and further to
            that of the tribes, from which the patricians were excluded, serious
            religious difficulties had to be encountered and overcome; for every
            political institution was fenced round and guarded by religious sanctions, whicf it was sacrilege to touch. How could
            plebeians perform the solemn sacrifices, take the auguries and commune with the
            gods in the forms which were the exclusive and hereditary
            possession of the patrician families? However much the political institutions
            might require change and adaptation to new circumstances, the gods were
            eternal and their service could not suffer any interruption or
            modification for reasons of political convenience. Yet such pretensions
            were in the long run not strong enough to stem the tide of reform.
            Plebeians were admitted to the sacred duties; they did take the auspices,
            as the patricians had done, and yet the gods were not less propitious than
            before. The plebeian assembly of tribes left the religious formalities
            in the possession of the more ancient and more dignified bodies; it
            was satisfied with minor, less solemn, and less burdensome auspicia, but it nevertheless exercised the sovereignty
            which the law conferred on it all the same. The cumbrous old system of auspices
            was modified to suit the wants of a less scrupulous age. The signs given
            by the wild birds of the air were supplemented by those of the
            domesticated fowl, which, by its greater or less eagerness in swallowing food,
            indicated the amount of approval vouchsafed by the gods to any
            undertaking. Nothing could be more convenient than a prophetic animal kept
            in a cage and indicating by its appetite the will of the gods. No
            wonder that religious formalities of this kind soon became contemptible.
            Perhaps no other nation, in ancient or in modern times, would, under
            similar circumstances, have patiently continued practices so derogatory
            and injurious to the essence of religion.
            
          
          But the innovations in the ceremonial observances and
            the increasing doubts as to their efficacy, did little to shake the
            deep-rooted faith and superstition of the Roman people. The first traces
            of scepticism and irreligion, directed to a denial of a divine government
            of the world, occur in the succeeding period, and were caused by the
            contact with the literature and philosophy of Greece.
            Simultaneously with the Greek freethinkers and atheists, a host of
            Greek and Oriental magicians, conjurors, prophets, and
            religious jugglers of all sorts made their entry into Rome.
            The capital of the ancient world became a Pandemonium for all the
            unclean spirits, cast out from their old abodes by the master spirit of all,
            the spirit of lucre, which drove them to a promising locality. Loud
            complaints arose from the defenders of the old national religion.
            The spirit of intolerance awoke. The sanction of the state
            was obtained to purify Rome from the foreign intruders. But the
            religion of Rome was not so well organized for selfdefence as the state. It lacked unity of system, precision of doctrine, and
            administrative organisation. It could not act like a Church militant, and
            all its efforts were fruitless. It may be doubted whether this was an
            evil. If foreign religions found admittance into Rome, it was because
            they satisfied a religious craving of the people which the native religion
            neglected. The complaints of ancient and even of modern writers that the
            virtues of the Roman people suffered from these foreign influences
            seem groundless. Our knowledge suffices to show that the earlier
            period was the good old time only in the imagination or in the meaningless
            phrases of sentimental moralists.
            
          
          Agriculture and pasturage continued to be the
            principal occupation of the people, and they were carried on, as of old, by
            free peasants on farms of moderate extent. Towards the end of the Samnite
            wars, when thousands of prisoners of war had swelled the number of
            slaves, farming on a larger scale seems, to have been
            attempted. Extensive landed estates were formed by the wealthy nobility
            and swallowed up the smaller holdings of the peasantry. Slowly but surely
            this social and economical revolution was
            consummated. It was possible only by a violation of the Licinian laws,'
            which had restricted the amount of public land that an individual was
            allowed to occupy. The guardians of the law frequently inforced fines,
            and endeavoured to curb the greediness of the rich and the powerful. The
            time was not yet come when the public good was borne down by the interests
            of private men, when the Licinian law became obsolete and forgotten, and
            when the free peasantry was swept away from the soil and slaves cultivated
            the vast estates of the wealthy. If the law had continued to be inforced, as it was before the Punic wars, the Gracchi
            would not have found a state of social disorder that was beyond all cure.
            The anecdotes of the poverty of Fabricius and Curius seem to show that wealth was not
              absolutely necessary, even as late as the war with Pyrrhus, for a man to
              obtain the highest honours of the state. The story of Cornelius Rufinus, who
              was expelled from the senate for having in his house silver plate to the extent
              of ten pounds, would prove, if true, that in the same period the ancestral
              simplicity of manners was still maintained. But the ostentation
              with which these stories are repeated shows that even then a change
              was taking place, and that men like Fabricius and Curius were not the rule hut the exception.
              
            
          When Rome grew to be the capital and centre of a large
            empire, it was necessary that the character of the town population should
            undergo a change. Industry and trade supplanted agricultural pursuits. The
            soil of the town was too valuable for growing com, wine, fruit, or
            grass. Workshops and sale-rooms superseded stables and granaries. The
            houses of the nobility assumed larger dimensions. Foreigners and freedmen
            carried on a lucrative trade, which the genuine Romans were too proud or
            too dull to engage in. What they thought of such occupations, we
            learn from Cicero,1 who looks upon the useful crafts as a mild sort of
            slavery, upon retail trade as a continued practice of puffing and
            cheating, and barely admits that the wholesale merchant is not utterly
            contemptible, hut may even deserve commendation if, satisfied with
            his profits, he gives up his business to retire into the country, and
            to live at last as a gentleman. We may be sure that such views of
            industrial and commercial pursuits were not peculiar to conceited
            philosophers or self-complacent aristocrats like Cicero, but that they
            expressed a national prejudice and prevailed even more generally before the
            Punic wars than at a later period.
            
          
          The external appearance of the city of Rome was in
            keeping with the economical and social condition of
            the inhabitants at a time before the wealth of conquered provinces
            had flowed thither, and before the nobles had begun to vie with each
            other' in displaying the spoils of their rapacity. Whilst the private
            dwellings were mean, the buildings erected at the public cost were worthy
            of the greatness of Rome. Numerous temples adorned all parts of the town. In
            the short space of twelve years, from 302 to 290, not less than eight new
            ones are said to have been vowed or built; Some of these no
            doubt were insignificant. None could compare with the magnificence of the
            temple of Jupiter on the Capitol; but it appears that a large portion of
            the booty made in the wars with the Samnites and with Pyrrhus was devoted
            to the adornment of the town. The first great pictorial decorations
            were executed at this time. It was a Roman from one of the noblest
            families who devoted himself to the art of painting. C. Fabius, surnamed
            Pictor, showed his fellow-citizens, and especially the men of the
            noble houses, a new way of distinguishing themselves and
            of benefiting their country. He proved that it was not unworthy of a noble
            Roman to cultivate the arts. The Fabian house produced afterwards also the
            first historian of Rome. But these attempts to cultivate the arts
            and literature had but little effect. The genuine Romans looked upon
            such pursuits as interfering with the first and all-engrossing duty of a
            citizen and a soldier; for a long time they frowned upon the polite arts
            of the Greeks, and even after this prejudice was overcome, it was an
            exception when a true Roman devoted himself to them.
            
          
          From the Gallic conflagration Rome gradually rose to greater
            splendour. The huge substructions of the Capitol dated from this period. By
            degrees the Forum assumed a more imposing appearance. In the place of the
            butchers' shops beautiful porticoes were erected, where
            silversmiths and bankers carried on their business; on festive occasions
            the columns were ornamented with captured arms. The platform for the
            public orators was decorated with the beaks of the ships taken at Antium (338 BC). Various works of art and statues were
            erected all around. The statue of the famous augur Attus Navius, who opposed the reform of Tarquinius
            Priscus, was among the number. Ignorance and credulity ascribed the
            erection to the regal period. There were also the statues of Horatius
            Codes, of Cloelia, of the four ambassadors
            murdered in Fidenae (438 BC), of Hermodoros of
            Ephesus, who is said to have assisted the decemvirs in the drawing up of
            their laws. All these, and moreover the statues of the kings of Rome,
            of T. Tatius and Junius Brutus, were most probably set up about this time.
            In 296 the aediles Quintus and Cneius Ogulnius placed under the Romulean fig-tree a bronze figure of the suckling she-wolf, of which a copy,
            perhaps the original, has been preserved to our own day.
            
          
          Most of the works of art which were then put up in
            Rome were probably not of Roman origin. They were either bought in
            Etruria, like the four-horse chariot of clay which decorated the summit of the
            Capitoline temple of Jupiter, or they were spoils from Etruscan and
            Greek towns, and were falsely given out for Roman works. Nothing was
            easier than to give such statues Roman names. Almost any Greek male statue
            might pass for Romulus. There can he no doubt that the practice
            of carrying away works of art from conquered towns was practised long
            before Tarentum, Syracuse, and Corinth fell into the hands of the Romans.
            Apart from the inborn rapacity of the Romans, there was an inducement for
            such robbery in the national religion. It was customary to convey
            solemnly to Rome the principal deity of a conquered town, and to give it a
            place in the Roman worship. Thus the Veientine Juno was transferred to Rome. What was more natural than that other works
            of art should share the same fate? As soon as Rome was mistress of
            the Campanian towns, rich spoils of this kind fell into the hands of
            the conquerors, both there and in the several Greek colonies of southern
            Italy.
            
          
          Care was now taken not only to adorn Rome with works
            of art, but also to make improvements for the convenience, health, and
            comfort of the inhabitants. The grandest public work of this class was the
            great sewer, which is stated to have been constructed in the Etruscan
            period under Tarquinius Priscus. It drained the lower parts of the
            town between the hills, and made it habitable. Before the Gallic
            conflagration, the streets are said to have been regularly laid out with
            regard to the direction of this sewer; but when the town was hastily rebuilt,
            no attention was paid to the old line of streets, and accordingly Rome
            consisted of a maze of narrow, crooked, and irregular streets. It seems,
            however, that the statement of the original regularity of the Roman streets is
            a mere conjecture, for how could the knowledge of it have been
            preserved? Rome was, most probably, from the very beginning, like all
            other towns which rise spontaneously, built irregularly and
            inconveniently; and the Gallic conflagration, whatever alterations it may have
            caused, did not cause a change in this respect. The streets were
            too narrow for the constantly increasing traffic. They were not
            originally planned for carriages any more than the lanes of our mediaeval
            towns. It was for this reason, and not only for the purpose of restraining
            luxurious habits, that the privilege- of driving in carriages was confined
            to the vestal virgins and to the Roman matrons. Gradually the aediles
            began to pave a few streets from the proceeds of fines inflicted for the
            violation of the Licinian land laws. Appius Claudius constructed the first
            aqueduct, and after the termination of the war with Pyrrhus, Manius  Curius began to
            build a second with the spoils taken in that war, 273 B.C. 
            
          
          While Rome, in consequence of the extension of the
            Growth of Roman dominion, became more and more the seat of industry, trade, and
            art, while increasing wealth banished the old simplicity and rustic
            contentment, and changed the external appearance of the city, a greater
            freedom showed itself in the observance of the old customs and in the
            rules of social and family life. The active intercourse with foreign
            nations, the enlarged knowledge, the new problems and experiences produced
            by the novel situation of the republic, had the effect of making it
            impossible to preserve the narrow, obstructive, and troublesome
            rules, which in a rude age had seemed necessary to preserve
            the family and society at large from anarchy. The strict laws of the
            paternal authority (the patria potestas) were relaxed; the ties which bound
            together the members of a house (gens) and of a family (familia), to make of them a small political community
            within the state, were loosened. The solemn form of marriage by ‘confarreatio,’ connected with auspicia and sacrifices, which had been
              originally peculiar to the patricians, was more and more
              superseded even in patrician houses by a kind of civil marriage.1 At
              the same time the freedom of disposing by will, which had formerly been
              subject to the consent of the members of the house, or of the curia, was
              enlarged. In every way the barriers were broken down which in former
              times had confined the individual within the limits of his family, had
              hampered his freedom of action, and had placed an intermediate authority
              between him and the state. In the natural course of development,
              the sovereign power of the state superseded or absorbed the remnants
              of those institutions which had preceded the formation of the political
              union. The ancient tribes of Ramnes, Tities, and Luceres became things
              of the past and were surrendered to oblivion; the members of the
              different houses ceased to act for common political or social purposes;
              religious ceremonies alone preserved y faint memory of what had once been a
              vigorous institution. 
              
            
          It is the usual complaint of shallow moralists that
            with the old austerity and more rigid discipline, with the original poverty
            and limited enjoyments, nations lose their purity of morals, while they
            acquire wealth, culture, and refinement. Such a view as this prompted the
            absurd and useless sumptuary laws, of which Rome at a very
            early period had a great number. The Romans with their narrow views
            of life, their rustic parsimony, and their military liking for coercive
            measures, delighted in meddling in the affairs of private life, in prescribing
            how many flute-players should be allowed at a funeral, how much
            silver plate people should have in their houses, what ornaments they might
            exhibit in their dress. Even in the Twelve Tables there are traces of very
            minute regulations of this kind; and in spite of all the teaching of
            experience and all the evidence of the uselessnes of
            such restrictions, the Romans continued to hope that such scarecrows would
            keep off immorality, and to think that virtue was safe if wealth was
            prevented from supplying its owners with the means of gratifying
            their tastes and vanities. History has taught us that rude and
            barbarous tribes are not more virtuous than nations advanced in
            civilisation, but that their vices are
            mori coarse, fierce, and unblushing, because they are not controlled and
            reprobated by higher knowledge, delicacy of feeling, and the restraints of
            public opinion and refined culture. The Romans, as far as we can see, were
            even in the most ancient times hard-hearted, cruel, selfish, rapacious,
            and unscrupulous in taking advantage of the weakness of others for their
            own profit. It is not likely that increasing refinement, culture, and
            wealth made them worse in any respect. At any rate, in the period of
            which we speak, the change in the mode of living was not yet very
            great. What we hear of the extravagance which was then considered a sign
            of degeneracy is rather a proof of simplicity and contentment. The consul
            Cornelius Rufinus was excluded from the senate by the censor C. Fabricius for having a few pounds of silver plate in
            his house. We should have a higher opinion of the censorial office if
            we could think that Rufinus was deemed unworthy of the rank of senator on
            account of his covetousness and rapacity, for which he was notorious.—A
            curious illustration of the state of Roman society and manners is given by
            the story of an act of wholesale poisoning with which at the time of the
            great Latin war a number of matrons were charged. In the year 331 several
            of the first men of the republic died of a malignant disease. On
            the evidence of a female slave, some noble matrons were charged with
            having poisoned them, and were compelled, in proof of their innocence, to
            drink the poison which they said that they had prepared as wholesome
            medicines. When they died in consequence, a general suspicion was
            engendered, and at last about 170 Roman matrons were convicted of
            poisoning and suffered death. Such an aberration of mind seemed like a
            disturbance of the laws of nature, and a dictator was appointed to
            drive a nail into the wall of the temple of the Capitoline Jupiter, a
            ceremony by which, as on former occasions, the anger of the gods was
            appeased and general confidence restored among the people. It appears, however,
            from Livy’s narrative, that, even among the superstitious Roman annalists, there were some who attributed the numerous
            deaths of the year 331 to natural causes. We have no hesitation in
            upholding this sensible and humane judgment. It is but too well known
            by frequent experience that by great calamities, by unexplained and
            noxious natural phenomena, not only individuals, but whole populations, are
            demented with fear, and frantically rush into the wildest excesses of
            cruelty to save themselves. Even in the present age we have
            heard madmen shriek that the wells or even the medicines were poisoned
            with, which benevolence attempted to rescue them from the grip of death. Fear,
            ignorance, and superstition have at all times generated cruelty, and nothing
            but these failings of the human mind invented the crime of poisoning in Rome
            and caused so many victims to suffer innocently an ignominious death.
            
          
          During the Samnite wars the great mass of the Roman
            people retained the old simplicity of life in their dress,
            their dwellings, their food and drink. Their recreations
            and rejoicings, the popular festivals and domestic pleasures, were
            essentially the same as before. The number of festive days appears to have
            been very great even in ancient times. The Romans were always fond of
            holydays and religious shows. They never tired of public
            processions. Hence the popularity of the triumphal entries of the
            victorious generals, and the pomp and magnificence which were displayed on
            such occasions. The triumphal procession and the triumphal arch are
            genuine and characteristic productions, and owe their origin to the
            warlike spirit and the national and family pride of the Romans. No people
            but the Roman had triumphal fasti. The highest aspiration of the most
            ambitious citizen was to enter Rome at the head of a victorious army,
            exhibiting rich spoils and captured enemies; to pass along the
            Sacred Way and the Forum amidst the acclamations of the people
            dressed in their holyday attire; to ascend the Capitol, and in the temple
            of Jupiter to render thanks, in the name of the people, for the victory
            which the god had vouchsafed to them. Such days were the most glorious
            festivals of a warlike people, and they would have been days
            of honour if, by the native cruelty and inhumanity of the Romans,
            they had not too often become the day of death for defeated enemies.
            Whilst the triumphant consular general ascended the steps to the Capitol,
            the captive leader of the enemy was led into the dismal dungeon to die. If
            it be true, as Roman annalists have related, that
            chap. the noble Samnite, C. Pontius, twenty-seven years after he had
            spared the Roman legions at Caudium, trusting in Roman honour and justice,
            was led captive through the streets of Rome by Q. Fabius Gurges, and then put to death, this fact alone is
            enough to make us avert our eyes with loathing and horror from the most
            glorious of Roman triumphs.
            
          
          The triumphal processions were the first public rejoicings
            of the warlike people of Rome, but at a very early period—according to the
            legendary history, in the reign of the elder Tarquin—the so-called Great
            or Roman games (Ludi magni, Ludi Romani) were established, and
            several others in course of time. These games consisted at first of
            chariot races and boxing, and were celebrated in the great race-course (Circus
            maximus), between the Aventine and the Palatine. For a long time the Romans
            were contented with these innocent and bloodless exhibitions. But, in the
            beginning of the Punic wars, the hideous gladiatorial combats were
            introduced, which tended to brutalise the feelings and to deteriorate
            and blunt the taste for the enjoyments of genuine art.
            
          
          The first theatrical performances took place in the
            year 364, when, according to Livy’s account, a great pestilence desolated Rome.
            It was for the purpose of averting the divine displeasure that the first
            artistic dances were introduced from Etruria. They were executed by
            Etruscan players, with an accompaniment of the flute, and were at first
            nothing but graceful rhythmical movements without song or dialogue, or any
            adaptation for mimic representation of a plot. If the account is correct, the
            first scenic performance wanted the very germ of dramatic art, which consists
            in action expressed by words or songs, connected with expressive gestures.
            It is not possible to understand how the drama could be developed from
            such a beginning. We are therefore compelled to question the correctness
            of Livy’s opinion, especially as we find that the elements of the
            drama were imported from elsewhere. The Greek tragedy and comedy were
            simply imitated by the Romans. The native Italian drama grew out of the
            oldest popular amusements, which had not, like the Dionysian
            festivals of the Greeks, an essentially religious character, but
            were of a social and economical nature,
            connected with the harvest, the vintage, the marriage feast. On such occasions the
            popular Italian poetry took the form of improvised mockery and jocular
            lines—the so-called Fescennine verses —and of harmless effusions, and
            sarcastic remarks on persons and things, called satires. All this poetry
            had reference to the actual life and present experience of
            the people, to matters with which they were familiar; and it differed
            therefore fundamentally from the choral poetry of the Greeks, which
            emanated from the religious ideas and the mythological conceptions of the
            past. The Italian games were therefore genuine carnival amusements or
            farces: they had neither dignity nor sobriety, neither depth
            of thought nor elevation of feeling. In various parts of Latium and
            Campania there arose different forms of such plays, containing both
            dialogue and action. All of them had this in common, that they were acted
            not by trained and paid artists, but by amateur players. They were
            all improvised, and could not, therefore, claim to be literary productions.
            The Fescennine verses and the satires had no direct influence on the
            regular drama of the subsequent period. But the popular farces called
            Fabulae Atellanae, cultivated originally at Atella in Campania, as their name seems to indicate,
              and transferred afterwards to Rome, were developed by poets and
              professional actors into a regular drama, and enjoyed a high degree of
              popularity by the side of the plays imported from Greece.
              
            
          The period of which we speak contained other elements
            of poetry, which, if the Roman people had been gifted with a poetic vein,
            might have been developed into worthy branches of a national literature,
            but which remained neglected and despised by the higher class of minds,
            and therefore never emerged from the low sphere of
            unlettered society. First there were the funeral songs (neniae), which were repeated by paid female mourners,
            and which seem to have consisted of general exclamations of wading
            and sorrow with which the name of the departed was connected. If,
            instead of repeating the old lines over and over again, the merits of the
            great men had formed the subject of new compositions, what heroic songs
            might have been composed! As it was, the ‘neniee’
            were considered the worthless poetry of silly old women.—Secondly, there is
            said to have been the practice at great banquets of letting
            youths sing songs in praise of departed worthies. But we cannot form
            an idea of these poems, as they were never committed to writing, and were
            forgotten in historical times. If .they had contained any elements. of
            beauty, they would probably not have perished. Perhaps they were dry
            enumerations of personal virtues, qualities, and distinctions, of
            discharged public offices, of victories and triumphs, and they may have
            contained in a poetical form, i.e, in
            the rude Saturnian metre, the substance of family chronicles
            and traditions.—Thirdly, there were the couplets which the soldiers
            used to sing on the occasion of a triumph. They  were not always
            complimentary to the triumphing general, but often the reverse, the
            licence of the day permitting the men to express their opinions freely.
            The Romas had great talent at all times for
            biting sarcasm and caustic , satire, and some specimens of such poetry
            belonging to a later period exhibit these qualities in a sufficiently
            clear | light, but show at the same time that the national literature
            was not likely to be enriched by wits from the ranks.—Still less can we look
            for a poetic element fin various kinds of popular poetry which exist
            everywhere among the lower strata of society, such as
            proverbs, popular maxims, peasants’ rules of the weather and
            the crops, nursery rhymes, and spells for conjuring and healing. No
            degree of culture in the higher classes of society seems to affect these
            compositions. They are clung to with a wonderful tenacity, and survive the
            greatest intellectual and political revolutions.
            
          
          While thus the genuine national elements of a poetical
            literature were left in Rome entirely to the care of the lower classes,
            while all poetic compositions were of a fugitive nature, and, having arisen in
            the excitement of the moment, passed away quickly to give place to
            another equally trivial and ephemeral, no progress and development could
            take place. The art of writing was indeed known and practised assiduously,
            but it was not applied for the purpose of preserving the popular poetry.
            It was in the service of the state, and was almost the monopoly of
            the men who worked in the public offices; of lawyers and of priests. The
            national literature of Rome was therefore originally prosaic. The lists of
            magistrates, the year-books of the pontifices, the formularies and
            official rules of the different offices of state and religion, the
            treaties concluded with neighbouring nations, the tables of the laws,
            formed the fundamental element of the oldest permanent literature. No
            attempt was made in these writings to please the taste. The chief
            requisite was accuracy in the wording, and thus a style
            originated somewhat like the jargon of English lawyers, which
            must have been even in antiquity as unintelligible and repulsive to
            the uninitiated as legal documents are nowadays. It is only when language
            is applied to address the general public, that it can be emancipated from
            the unnatural distortions, obscurities, and blemishes of purely
            technical diction.
            
          
          Nothing is so well calculated to give flexibility and
            ease to a language as the custom of public speaking.
                
          
          Where a select body of experienced and cultivated men
            determines the policy of a state in free debate, there is an admirable
            school for the cultivation of prose language. Such a school was the Roman
            senate. Here it was felt that clear, convincing speech was a weapon with
            which every statesman was obliged to be familiar. Unfortunately . no
            reports of speeches of the early period have been preserved. The alleged speech
            in which Appius the Blind dissuaded the peace with Pyrrhus was indeed
            looked upon in Cicero’s age as an authentic document of ancient
            oratory, but it could not have been faithfully reported. Yet,
            even without genuine specimens of the speeches of that time, we have
            no reason to doubt that the art of public speaking had reached a
            considerable degree of development.
            
          
          While, as we have seen, neither the poetical nor the
            Roman prosaic literature of Rome had even begun to be embodied in a permanent
            form in writing, it appears that the private records of the noble
            families, the meagre rudiments of historical works, were very numerous.
            The outlines of these records were the inscriptions under the images
            of the great men preserved in every noble house, which gave the titles
            and dignities of each. The substance was supplied chiefly by the orations (laudationes) which, on the occasion of a funeral, the next
            of kin used to deliver over the bier of the departed.
            
          
          When a noble Roman had died, the body was adorned with
            the insignia of the public offices which he had discharged, and with the
            honorary distinctions he had gained in war; it was laid out in state in
            the great hall (the atrium) of his house, where in niches all around were
            exhibited the images of his ancestors. The funeral procession
            moved solemnly, like that of a triumph, to the sound of music and the
            loud wailing of the women. The bier was preceded by a line of men, who
            represented the predecessors of the departed, wearing their masks and the
            insignia of their office. Thus the deified heroes of every house,
            returning as it were from the grave, accompanied the dead on his last way,
            to conduct him into the spiritual world. On these occasions the nobility
            of every house was exhibited before the people in all its splendour. A long
            line of ancestors, a great number of honours and distinctions, were so
            many documents of nobility; and the people delighting in the greatness of their
            great men, and pleased with the show, were not over critical in
              examining too closely the validity of all the documents thus publicly passed in review.
                After the line of ancestors came the bier, carried by the
                  nearest relatives of the departed, and followed by his friends
                  and admirers. Thus the procession moved 'slowly to the Forum. Before
                  the public platform the bier was put down; the ancestors ranged themselves
                  around on ivory chairs; the train of mourners stood around in a circle; a
                  son of the departed, or some other near relative, ascended the platform
                  and delivered the funeral speech, the ‘laudation,’ which, as its name
                  indicated, was intended to set forth the great deeds of the departed and
                  those of his ancestors. All that the whole family had done for the glory and greatness
                  of Home was on such solemn occasions duly recorded. 
                  
                
          It is evident that such speeches formed in themselves
            a kind of popular historical literature. They stood in the place of heroic
            songs, epic poetry, or ballads, which with other nations embodied and
            preserved the popular traditions of the past. Out of them grew the family
            chronicles, and these were the single threads out of which the
            history of the nation was woven. Specimens of them were preserved in later
            times, and even in Home there were found critics who discovered that they
            were full of exaggerations and inventions.
            
          
          The national development of the Roman people, so far
            as we have now followed it, was in all essential points of Italian growth,
            independent of foreign influences; and in this respect the period over
            which we have travelled forms a contrast to that which followed it. The
            political institutions contain nothing that was imitated or borrowed from abroad;
            they were evolved from the original Italian germs by a process of gradual
            steady reform, and not subject to violent revolutions and reactions. They
            had now reached their maturity and completely satisfied the existing
            wants. Italy, united by a federal union, but not enslaved under the
            supremacy of the Roman senate and people, enjoyed internal peace and the
            means of developing the abundant sources of national wealth and
            prosperity. The old religion of the people was still dominant, and simplicity
            and purity of life, moderation and contentment—the virtues of poverty—were not
            yet extinct; intellectual culture, literature, art, science were in
            their infancy, and there was hope that they might grow with the
            greatness, the wealth, and the power of the nation.
            
          
          But at this moment a great revolution took place. The Punic
            wars led to the conquest of provinces; the contact with the Greeks was fatal to
            the further development of Punic the native Italian intellect. The foreign
            conquests enriched and demoralized the governing classes. Political power
            was more and more monopolized by a contracted oligarchy. Whilst the
            military strength of Greece succumbed to the Roman legions, the Hellenic
            mind triumphed over the Italian, and the union of the two generated
            that literature and that art which for many centuries were dominant in the
            greater part of Europe. Thus, whilst the republican institutions decayed,
            the mind of the people was invigorated and ennobled, till, under the first
            imperial ruler, the Roman state assumed a new form, and Graeco-Roman
            civilisation reached its most perfect development.